Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n communion_n external_a forsake_v 5,198 5 10.0415 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A23658 Catholicism, or, Several enquiries touching visible church-membership, church-communion, the nature of schism, and the usefulness of natural constitutions for the furtherance of religion by W.A. Allen, William, d. 1686. 1683 (1683) Wing A1055; ESTC R502 134,503 424

There are 28 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

catholicism_n or_o several_a inquiry_n touch_v visible_a church-membership_a church-communion_n the_o nature_n of_o schism_n and_o the_o vsefulness_n of_o national_a constitution_n for_o the_o furtherance_n of_o religion_n by_o w._n a._n london_n print_v by_o m._n c._n for_o walter_n kettilby_n at_o the_o bishop_n head_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n 1683._o the_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n one_o will_v think_v any_o thing_n shall_v be_v acceptable_a to_o dissent_v brethren_n which_o have_v a_o true_a tendency_n to_o deliver_v they_o from_o those_o mistake_a notion_n of_o thing_n which_o do_v expose_v they_o to_o much_o trouble_n from_o man_n and_o from_o the_o law_n themselves_o and_o by_o mean_n of_o which_o they_o be_v a_o occasion_n of_o trouble_n and_o danger_n to_o the_o nation_n and_o it_o be_v but_o reasonable_a to_o expect_v that_o thing_n of_o this_o nature_n shall_v be_v consider_v by_o they_o now_o at_o such_o a_o time_n as_o this_o though_o neglect_v during_o the_o time_n in_o which_o those_o opinion_n put_v they_o to_o no_o trouble_n the_o hope_n of_o which_o and_o the_o sorrow_n to_o see_v christian_a brethren_n to_o suffer_v great_a inconvenience_n to_o themselves_o needless_o have_v be_v a_o motive_n to_o i_o to_o make_v these_o sheet_n public_a at_o this_o time_n as_o not_o doubt_v but_o that_o if_o judicious_o and_o impartial_o weigh_v they_o with_o other_o writing_n of_o like_a nature_n may_v be_v of_o good_a use_n to_o discover_v to_o they_o their_o mistake_n their_o separation_n from_o parochial_a communion_n which_o do_v expose_v they_o to_o trouble_v do_v proceed_v principal_o from_o their_o mistake_n as_o i_o conceive_v they_o to_o be_v either_o about_o that_o which_o make_v man_n member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n or_o that_o which_o give_v they_o right_o to_o the_o external_a privilege_n thereof_o or_o about_o the_o external_a manner_n of_o public_a worship_n there_o be_v many_o of_o the_o dissenter_n who_o notion_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o of_o man_n right_a to_o communion_n in_o the_o external_a privilege_n of_o it_o seem_v much_o narrow_a than_o the_o scripture_n represent_v those_o thing_n to_o be_v they_o make_v that_o to_o be_v necessary_a to_o visible_a church-member-ship_n and_o communion_n which_o be_v but_o necessary_a to_o invisible_a church-communion_n and_o then_o they_o make_v this_o qualification_n necessary_a not_o only_o by_o way_n of_o duty_n but_o of_o condition_n also_o without_o which_o in_o humane_a judgement_n person_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v into_o church_n fellowship_n or_o unto_o communion_n in_o the_o external_a privilege_n of_o the_o church_n which_o notion_n and_o correspondent_a practice_n of_o they_o i_o have_v endeavour_v to_o discover_v to_o be_v plain_o contrary_a to_o the_o whole_a current_n of_o the_o scripture_n touch_v these_o matter_n both_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o of_o the_o new_a both_o as_o to_o doctrine_n and_o matter_n of_o fact_n that_o which_o have_v betray_v they_o into_o this_o mistake_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v the_o want_n of_o distinguish_v between_o the_o internal_a and_o external_a state_n of_o the_o church_n for_o want_v of_o which_o they_o confound_v they_o and_o make_v that_o which_o be_v but_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o church_n as_o invisible_a to_o be_v so_o likewise_o to_o the_o be_v of_o it_o as_o it_o be_v visible_a the_o church_n be_v describe_v in_o scripture_n but_o as_o a_o little_a flock_n and_o that_o as_o our_o saviour_n say_v there_o be_v but_o few_o which_o find_v the_o narrow_a way_n which_o lead_v to_o life_n and_o enter_v in_o at_o the_o strait_a gate_n and_o because_o the_o qualification_n of_o those_o of_o the_o invisible_a church_n who_o shall_v be_v save_v as_o describe_v in_o scripture_n seem_v to_o agree_v but_o to_o a_o few_o of_o those_o who_o profess_v the_o christian_a religion_n and_o because_o the_o church_n be_v but_o one_o hereupon_o they_o come_v to_o be_v persuade_v that_o none_o be_v real_o and_o true_o of_o the_o church_n but_o such_o who_o qualification_n agree_v with_o their_o description_n to_o who_o salvation_n be_v indeed_o promise_v but_o as_o for_o other_o they_o esteem_v they_o no_o more_o to_o be_v true_a and_o real_a member_n of_o the_o church_n than_o wooden_a leg_n and_o glass_n eye_n be_v member_n of_o the_o body_n of_o a_o man._n but_o then_o there_o be_v scripture_n which_o must_v be_v consider_v likewise_o which_o have_v foretell_v of_o the_o come_n of_o many_o whole_a nation_n into_o the_o church_n both_o king_n and_o their_o people_n and_o of_o the_o numerous_a increase_n of_o it_o when_o a_o little_a one_o shall_v become_v a_o thousand_o and_o a_o small_a one_o a_o strong_a nation_n when_o the_o stone_n cut_v out_o of_o the_o mountain_n without_o hand_n shall_v fill_v the_o will_n earth_n when_o for_o number_n they_o shall_v say_v the_o place_n be_v too_o straight_o for_o i_o give_v place_n to_o i_o that_o i_o may_v dwell_v and_o the_o like_a for_o there_o be_v many_o such_o prediction_n in_o scripture_n now_o unless_o they_o will_v say_v that_o whole_a nation_n and_o those_o vast_a number_n foremention_v be_v all_o of_o the_o church_n as_o invisible_a which_o be_v more_o than_o they_o will_v or_o can_v say_v they_o must_v of_o necessity_n admit_v of_o a_o distinction_n of_o a_o twofold_a state_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o catholic_n church_n the_o one_o external_a and_o visible_a the_o other_o internal_a and_o invisible_a and_o if_o this_o distinction_n be_v admit_v than_o these_o prediction_n concern_v the_o vast_a extent_n of_o the_o church_n will_v be_v fair_o reconcileable_a to_o those_o other_o scripture_n which_o speak_v of_o it_o in_o a_o more_o contract_v and_o limit_a sense_n without_o which_o they_o seem_v irreconcilable_a for_o what_o some_o scripture_n speak_v touch_v the_o paucity_n or_o fewness_n of_o church-member_n and_o what_o other_o say_v touch_v a_o far_o great_a number_n of_o which_o the_o church_n do_v and_o will_v consist_v be_v both_o true_a in_o different_a respect_n the_o one_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o internal_a and_o invisible_a state_n of_o the_o church_n the_o other_o in_o respect_n of_o that_o which_o be_v external_a and_o visible_a and_o this_o distinction_n be_v fair_o justify_v by_o what_o our_o bless_a saviour_n have_v say_v more_o than_o once_o to_o wit_n that_o many_o be_v call_v but_o few_o be_v choose_v and_o if_o any_o shall_v fancy_v that_o this_o twofold_a state_n of_o church-member_n imply_v two_o church_n the_o one_o visible_a the_o other_o invisible_a there_o be_v no_o ground_n for_o it_o since_o those_o who_o be_v of_o the_o church_n as_o invisible_a be_v the_o same_o person_n which_o be_v in_o external_a and_o visible_a union_n and_o communion_n with_o those_o who_o be_v of_o the_o church_n only_o as_o visible_a and_o so_o make_v one_o church_n with_o they_o but_o we_o can_v say_v they_o make_v one_o church_n with_o these_o and_o another_o by_o themselves_o for_o then_o there_o will_v be_v two_o church_n indeed_o and_o yet_o of_o the_o same_o person_n for_o a_o considerable_a part_n consider_v then_o this_o twofold_a state_n of_o the_o church_n it_o will_v not_o be_v difficult_a at_o all_o to_o conceive_v how_o and_o why_o a_o participation_n in_o the_o external_a privilege_n of_o the_o church_n do_v belong_v to_o all_o that_o be_v external_o and_o visible_o of_o it_o when_o yet_o a_o participation_n in_o the_o internal_a and_o invisible_a privilege_n of_o it_o belong_v only_o to_o those_o who_o be_v of_o the_o church_n in_o respect_n of_o its_o invisible_a as_o well_o as_o visible_a state_n as_o there_o be_v different_a qualification_n of_o person_n of_o the_o same_o church_n so_o there_o be_v different_a privilege_n which_o belong_v to_o they_o according_o external_a one_o to_o they_o who_o be_v only_o external_o qualify_v and_o both_o external_a and_o internal_a one_o to_o they_o who_o be_v qualify_v for_o both_o now_o this_o different_a state_n of_o the_o church_n be_v so_o apparent_a as_o it_o be_v in_o scripture_n as_o also_o that_o those_o who_o have_v but_o common_a grace_n and_o yet_o baptise_a be_v real_o and_o true_o of_o the_o visible_a church_n i_o say_v the_o consideration_n of_o these_o thing_n have_v incline_v i_o to_o touch_v upon_o several_a thing_n which_o seem_v to_o render_v it_o very_o improbable_a at_o least_o that_o the_o apostle_n shall_v admit_v none_o into_o the_o church_n by_o baptism_n but_o such_o as_o they_o judge_v to_o believe_v so_o effectual_o as_o to_o be_v thereby_o regenerate_v before_o they_o will_v baptise_v they_o to_o what_o be_v say_v in_o my_o inquiry_n into_o these_o matter_n i_o shall_v here_o add_v a_o little_a more_o for_o our_o better_a understanding_n that_o case_n or_o question_n the_o question_n be_v whether_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o the_o apostle_n admit_v none_o into_o
be_v that_o make_v man_n to_o be_v of_o it_o and_o concern_v church-communion_n and_o what_o it_o be_v that_o qualify_v man_n for_o it_o have_v be_v the_o true_a reason_n and_o cause_n of_o our_o church-division_n and_o separation_n in_o great_a part_n where_o such_o notion_n have_v be_v entertain_v my_o present_a design_n therefore_o which_o i_o intend_v to_o pursue_v in_o these_o paper_n be_v to_o inquire_v into_o the_o true_a measure_n which_o the_o holy_a scripture_n give_v we_o of_o these_o thing_n that_o thereby_o we_o may_v the_o more_o steady_o and_o with_o the_o more_o certainty_n make_v a_o true_a judgement_n of_o those_o separation_n in_o church-communion_n which_o have_v be_v make_v and_o applaud_v by_o some_o i_o shall_v begin_v with_o what_o concern_v the_o be_v of_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o visible_a and_o then_o inquire_v how_o and_o by_o what_o mean_v man_n become_v member_n of_o it_o after_o this_o i_o shall_v inquire_v further_a what_o it_o be_v that_o qualify_v man_n for_o and_o which_o give_v they_o a_o right_a to_o external_a communion_n in_o this_o church_n as_o exercise_v in_o particular_a congregation_n and_o likewise_o into_o the_o nature_n of_o catholick-communion_n and_o schism_n and_o the_o usefulness_n of_o national-constitution_n for_o the_o furtherance_n of_o christian_a religion_n query_n i._n what_o be_v the_o true_a notion_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o visible_a the_o universal_a church_n as_o visible_a be_v that_o body_n company_n or_o society_n of_o people_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n which_o consist_v of_o all_o such_o as_o be_v visible_o join_v or_o unite_v to_o god_n in_o christ_n as_o head_n by_o a_o religious_a bond._n and_o that_o which_o do_v distinguish_v they_o from_o all_o other_o people_n in_o the_o world_n be_v that_o relation_n they_o bear_v to_o god_n different_a from_o that_o in_o which_o all_o other_o people_n stand_v relate_v to_o he_o and_o this_o relation_n be_v a_o religious_a relation_n by_o which_o they_o be_v bring_v near_o to_o god_n than_o all_o other_o people_n be_v all_o other_o people_n be_v relate_v as_o humane_a creature_n to_o god_n as_o their_o creator_n and_o governor_n but_o these_o be_v relate_v to_o he_o by_o another_o kind_n of_o bond_n &_o obligation_n such_o as_o be_v spiritual_a and_o of_o a_o religious_a nature_n of_o which_o i_o be_o to_o say_v more_o afterward_o and_o then_o as_o this_o relation_n be_v external_n and_o visible_a so_o that_o by_o which_o this_o relation_n be_v effect_v and_o wrought_v be_v something_o visible_a also_o which_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o relation_n itself_o be_v say_v to_o be_v visible_a now_o the_o person_n thus_o visible_o relate_v to_o god_n in_o christ_n be_v not_o all_o religious_o relate_v to_o he_o alike_o some_o of_o they_o be_v relate_v and_o unite_v to_o he_o internal_o and_o invisible_o by_o a_o invisible_a bond_n of_o union_n over_o and_o beside_o their_o visible_a relation_n to_o he_o by_o that_o which_o be_v visible_a when_o as_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v relate_v to_o he_o only_o external_o or_o if_o in_o any_o respect_n internal_o also_o yet_o not_o so_o or_o by_o such_o a_o relation_n as_o will_v entitle_v they_o to_o the_o internal_a and_o best_a sort_n of_o privilege_n of_o god_n people_n such_o as_o justification_n reconciliation_n pardon_v and_o eternal_a life_n but_o yet_o this_o difference_n do_v not_o make_v this_o body_n of_o people_n which_o be_v external_o one_o by_o a_o relation_n to_o god_n common_a to_o the_o whole_a to_o become_v two_o universal_a church_n for_o all_o which_o essential_o belong_v to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v not_o limit_v and_o restrain_v to_o that_o part_n of_o it_o which_o in_o respect_n of_o its_o internal_a and_o invisible_a state_n do_v differ_v from_o and_o excel_v the_o other_o for_o the_o external_n relation_n to_o god_n without_o which_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v not_o exist_v be_v common_a to_o the_o worse_a part_n of_o it_o as_o well_o as_o the_o better_a by_o reason_n whereof_o they_o can_v be_v two_o church_n and_o be_v but_o one_o one_o part_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n differ_v from_o another_o indeed_o in_o respect_n of_o internal_a and_o invisible_a state_n before_o god_n this_o be_v plain_a from_o the_o scripture_n but_o than_o it_o be_v as_o plain_a from_o thence_o that_o as_o touch_v their_o external_n and_o visible_a state_n they_o be_v one_o and_o that_o the_o same_o external_a privilege_n belong_v to_o the_o one_o as_o to_o the_o other_o of_o which_o more_o afterward_o we_o have_v not_o indeed_o the_o word_n visible_a and_o invisible_a use_v in_o scripture_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o two_o different_a state_n of_o man_n in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o church_n but_o yet_o we_o have_v those_o different_a state_n of_o they_o sufficient_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n which_o we_o mean_v by_o those_o word_n i_o need_v not_o instance_n in_o scripture_n of_o this_o nature_n because_o they_o be_v sufficient_o and_o common_o know_v and_o i_o shall_v have_v further_a occasion_n to_o mention_v they_o afterward_o query_n ii_o what_o be_v it_o which_o prepare_v or_o qualify_v person_n for_o that_o relation_n to_o god_n in_o christ_n which_o make_v they_o visible_a member_n of_o his_o church_n there_o be_v something_o previous_a to_o that_o by_o which_o the_o relation_n in_o man_n to_o god_n be_v wrought_v which_o make_v they_o visible_a member_n of_o his_o church_n and_o which_o do_v capacitate_v they_o for_o it_o and_o that_o be_v their_o be_v external_o call_v by_o god_n to_o be_v of_o the_o true_a religion_n person_n lare_fw-la first_o to_o become_v disciple_n before_o they_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o church_n by_o baptism_n and_o their_o become_a disciple_n and_o their_o be_v call_v be_v the_o same_o thing_n this_o be_v the_o foundation_n in_o which_o that_o relation_n be_v lay_v and_o upon_o which_o that_o which_o do_v effect_v it_o be_v build_v and_o people_n be_v thus_o call_v either_o 1._o when_o they_o be_v convert_v from_o a_o false_a religion_n to_o own_o and_o profess_v the_o true_a and_o thus_o the_o pagan_n be_v call_v by_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o apostle_n when_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o be_v disciple_n or_o 2._o when_o almighty_a god_n cause_v they_o to_o be_v bear_v and_o to_o be_v educate_v in_o the_o true_a religion_n as_o those_o be_v who_o be_v bear_v of_o parent_n external_o in_o covenant_n with_o god_n thus_o the_o jewish_a people_n from_o abraham_n time_n downward_o be_v call_v to_o be_v god_n people_n and_o to_o profess_v the_o true_a religion_n and_o according_o they_o be_v style_v god_n call_v once_o by_o the_o prophet_n isa_n 48.12_o harken_v to_o i_o o_o jacob_n and_o israel_n my_o call_v and_o how_o be_v they_o call_v abraham_n indeed_o he_o be_v call_v extraordinary_o by_o god_n who_o appear_v to_o he_o when_o he_o be_v in_o mesopotamia_n before_o he_o dwell_v in_o charran_n act._n 7.2_o but_o his_o posterity_n be_v call_v by_o be_v bear_v to_o and_o educate_v in_o the_o same_o religion_n which_o he_o himself_o be_v of_o and_o so_o be_v his_o child_n child_n from_o generation_n to_o generation_n and_o thus_o have_v it_o be_v in_o call_v person_n to_o be_v of_o the_o christian_a religion_n at_o the_o first_o erection_n of_o the_o church_n as_o christian_a man_n be_v extraordinary_o call_v by_o the_o preach_a and_o miracle_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o other_o they_o be_v call_v and_o convert_v from_o the_o pagan_a and_o jewish_a religion_n to_o own_o the_o christian_a religion_n but_o since_o the_o time_n of_o first_o plant_v the_o gospel_n up_o and_o down_o in_o the_o world_n god_n ordinary_a and_o common_a method_n of_o call_v man_n to_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n have_v be_v by_o their_o christian_a parent_n educate_v they_o in_o it_o and_o indeed_o their_o be_v bear_v of_o parent_n in_o a_o especial_a relation_n to_o god_n be_v in_o itself_o a_o providential_a call_v which_o qualify_v they_o for_o the_o privilege_n of_o be_v so_o relate_v also_o for_o upon_o that_o account_n they_o be_v both_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o now_o style_v a_o holy_a seed_n that_o be_v a_o seed_n separate_v from_o the_o infidel_n world_n to_o god_n and_o by_o this_o the_o female_n of_o the_o jew_n become_v church-member_n and_o by_o this_o be_v their_o male_n qualify_v to_o enter_v into_o covenant_n with_o god_n by_o circumcision_n at_o eight_o day_n old_a but_o of_o these_o thing_n further_a mention_n will_v be_v make_v in_o the_o process_n of_o our_o inquiry_n query_n iii_o what_o may_v that_o be_v by_o which_o people_n be_v make_v visible_a church-member_n that_o by_o which_o people_n be_v constitute_v complete_o visible_a church-member_n be_v a_o mutual_a covenant_v between_o god_n and_o they_o between_o christ_n
his_o ordinance_n and_o have_v the_o form_n of_o godliness_n though_o otherwise_o destitute_a of_o the_o power_n of_o it_o yet_o as_o they_o be_v thus_o far_o a_o people_n unto_o god_n so_o god_n so_o far_o own_v they_o as_o a_o people_n unto_o he_o separate_v unto_o he_o from_o the_o idolatrous_a and_o infidel_n world_n and_o according_o allow_v they_o a_o interest_n and_o share_n in_o the_o external_a privilege_n of_o his_o people_n of_o which_o communion_n in_o his_o word_n and_o ordinance_n be_v the_o chief_a only_o where_o god_n himself_o have_v put_v a_o bar_n to_o this_o enjoyment_n there_o the_o visible_a church_n ought_v to_o do_v so_o too_o as_o in_o those_o case_n wherein_o deprivation_n by_o church-censure_n be_v enjoin_v right_o to_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o church_n come_v in_o by_o man_n relation_n to_o it_o as_o part_n or_o member_n of_o it_o and_o so_o long_o as_o the_o relation_n continue_v so_o long_o a_o right_n to_o the_o external_a privilege_n continue_v except_o in_o the_o case_n before_o except_v those_o that_o be_v relate_v to_o the_o church_n both_o as_o visible_a and_o invisible_a have_v a_o right_n from_o god_n to_o church_n privilege_n both_o external_a internal_a and_o eternal_a but_o those_o who_o be_v relate_v to_o the_o church_n only_o external_o as_o it_o be_v visible_a have_v right_o only_o to_o the_o external_a privilege_n of_o it_o thus_o far_o we_o have_v argue_v from_o the_o nature_n and_o reason_n of_o the_o subject_n under_o consideration_n come_v we_o now_o to_o inquire_v what_o the_o usage_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v as_o to_o point_n of_o 〈◊〉_d in_o this_o matter_n as_o we_o have_v it_o record_v in_o scripture_n and_o as_o for_o the_o old_a testament_n church_n the_o whole_a nation_n of_o the_o jew_n that_o enter_v into_o covenant_n with_o god_n to_o be_v his_o people_n be_v allow_v their_o part_n and_o share_v in_o the_o ordinance_n of_o public_a worship_n and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o be_v comman●●_n 〈…〉_o they_o save_v in_o some_o ex●●_n 〈…〉_o as_o while_o they_o be_v un●●_n 〈…〉_o legal_a uncleanness_n and_o in_o th●●e_n particular_a case_n of_o guilt_n for_o which_o they_o be_v to_o be_v deprive_v of_o their_o life_n as_o well_o as_o communion_n and_o to_o be_v cut_v off_o from_o among_o the_o people_n three_o time_n in_o the_o year_n be_v all_o their_o male_n to_o appear_v before_o the_o lord_n to_o keep_v three_o solemn_a feast_n appoint_v and_o yet_o i_o think_v no_o body_n will_v imagine_v they_o to_o be_v all_o without_o exception_n of_o the_o church_n as_o invisible_a and_o when_o any_o stranger_n from_o among_o the_o gentile_n have_v a_o mind_n to_o turn_v proselyte_n to_o the_o jew_n religion_n all_o that_o be_v require_v of_o they_o to_o make_v they_o capable_a of_o communion_n in_o the_o passover_n be_v but_o to_o circumcise_v all_o their_o male_n by_o which_o they_o enter_v into_o covenant_n with_o god_n exod._n 12.48_o and_o since_o it_o be_v thus_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n church_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v imagine_v that_o the_o term_n of_o external_a communion_n shall_v be_v more_o rigorous_a and_o severe_a in_o the_o new_a since_o our_o saviour_n yoke_n be_v casie_a and_o his_o burden_n light_n in_o comparison_n of_o that_o among_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v a_o yoke_n as_o st._n peter_n speak_v which_o neither_o they_o nor_o their_o father_n be_v able_a to_o bear_v all_o the_o same_o adult_n person_n which_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o church_n by_o baptism_n be_v admit_v to_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o ordinance_n of_o worship_n thus_o it_o be_v in_o the_o first_o christian_a church_n which_o be_v a_o pattern_n to_o all_o that_o follow_v act._n 2.41_o 42._o when_o the_o three_o thousand_o be_v add_v to_o the_o church_n by_o baptism_n they_o continue_v in_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o in_o break_v of_o bread_n and_o prayer_n act_v 2.42_o and_o st._n paul_n say_v by_o one_o spirit_n we_o be_v all_o baptize_v into_o one_o body_n whether_o jew_n or_o gentile_n bond_n or_o free_a and_o have_v be_v all_o make_v to_o drink_v into_o one_o spirit_n the_o same_o all_o we_o see_v be_v make_v to_o drink_v into_o one_o spirit_n which_o be_v baptize_v into_o one_o body_n 1_o cor._n 12.13_o by_o drink_v into_o one_o spirit_n be_v mean_v communion_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o all_o interpreter_n that_o i_o have_v meet_v with_o again_o he_o have_v say_v thus_o chap._n 10.17_o we_o be_v many_o be_v one_o bread_n and_o one_o body_n for_o we_o be_v all_o partaker_n of_o one_o bread_n here_o again_o the_o same_o all_o that_o make_v one_o body_n be_v partaker_n of_o one_o bread_n so_o that_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o part_n equallize_v the_o union_n of_o the_o whole_a nor_o indeed_o be_v there_o any_o one_o instance_n in_o scripture_n that_o i_o can_v find_v of_o any_o one_o person_n that_o have_v be_v refuse_v communion_n with_o a_o christian_a church_n when_o he_o have_v desire_v it_o who_o have_v be_v before_o receive_v into_o the_o church_n by_o baptism_n except_o such_o as_o have_v be_v under_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n for_o some_o capital_a offence_n and_o such_o indeed_o be_v to_o be_v exclude_v until_o bring_v to_o repentance_n by_o the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n under_o which_o they_o live_v and_o st._n paul_n have_v give_v direction_n in_o what_o manner_n of_o case_n and_o for_o what_o manner_n of_o offence_n man_n be_v to_o be_v proceed_v against_o by_o church_n censure_v great_a or_o lesser_a after_o due_a admonition_n otherwise_o use_v but_o now_o say_v he_o i_o have_v write_v unto_o you_o not_o to_o keep_v company_n if_o any_o man_n that_o be_v call_v a_o brother_n be_v a_o fornicator_n or_o covetous_a or_o a_o idolater_n or_o a_o railer_n or_o a_o drunkard_n or_o a_o extortioner_n with_o such_o a_o one_o no_o not_o to_o eat_v 1_o cor._n 5.11_o for_o these_o and_o such_o like_a crime_n a_o church_n may_v and_o aught_o in_o she_o govern_v capacity_n to_o deny_v her_o communion_n with_o person_n guilty_a of_o they_o after_o due_a admonition_n and_o according_o our_o church_n have_v order_v public_a admonition_n frequent_o to_o be_v make_v in_o these_o word_n with_o many_o other_o if_o any_o of_o you_o be_v a_o blasphemer_n of_o god_n a_o hinderer_n or_o slanderer_n of_o his_o word_n a_o adulterer_n or_o be_v in_o malice_n or_o envy_n or_o in_o any_o other_o grievous_a crime_n repent_v you_o of_o your_o sin_n or_o else_o come_v not_o to_o that_o holy_a table_n lest_o after_o the_o take_n of_o that_o holy_a sacrament_n the_o devil_n enter_v into_o you_o as_o he_o do_v into_o judas_n and_o fill_v you_o full_a of_o all_o iniquity_n and_o bring_v you_o to_o destruction_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n and_o further_o if_o any_o that_o desire_v to_o communicate_v be_v a_o open_a and_o notorious_a evil_a liver_n or_o have_v do_v any_o wrong_n to_o his_o neighbour_n by_o word_n or_o deed_n so_o that_o the_o congregation_n be_v thereby_o offend_v the_o curate_n have_v knowledge_n thereof_o shall_v call_v he_o and_o advertise_v he_o that_o in_o any_o wise_a he_o presume_v not_o to_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n table_n until_o he_o have_v open_o declare_v himself_o to_o have_v true_o repent_v and_o amend_v his_o former_a naughty_a life_n that_o the_o congregation_n may_v thereby_o be_v satisfy_v which_o before_o be_v offend_v the_o same_o order_n shall_v the_o curate_n use_v with_o those_o betwixt_o who_o he_o perceive_v malice_n and_o hatred_n to_o reign_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o lord_n table_n until_o he_o know_v they_o to_o be_v reconcile_v i_o know_v there_o be_v several_a thing_n wont_a to_o be_v allege_v against_o admit_v such_o to_o the_o lord_n supper_n who_o have_v not_o save_v grace_n as_o 1._o that_o such_o will_v but_o increase_v their_o sin_n and_o further_o their_o damnation_n by_o partake_v of_o it_o so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v unregenerate_a to_o which_o it_o may_v be_v answer_v 1._o that_o such_o will_v not_o less_o sin_n by_o neglect_v to_o obey_v christ_n command_n do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o and_o in_o neglect_v to_o prepare_v themselves_o for_o it_o than_o they_o do_v when_o they_o come_v to_o this_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n unprepared_a but_o rather_o indeed_o more_o for_o by_o not_o come_v they_o make_v themselves_o guilty_a of_o a_o double_a disobedience_n the_o one_o in_v not_o do_v what_o christ_n have_v command_v to_o be_v do_v in_o remembrance_n of_o he_o the_o other_o in_o not_o prepare_v to_o do_v it_o after_o a_o right_a manner_n whereas_o by_o come_v unprepared_a they_o make_v themselves_o guilty_a but_o of_o one_o of_o they_o 2._o for_o the_o same_o reason_n man_n shall_v not_o
i_o to_o fall_v somewhat_o hard_o upon_o such_o as_o separate_v from_o the_o public_a worship_n of_o god_n establish_v in_o such_o nation_n by_o national_a authority_n in_o a_o way_n of_o national_a reformation_n and_o on_o those_o more_o especial_o who_o separate_a from_o that_o worship_n for_o that_o very_a reason_n because_o enjoin_v by_o national_a authority_n it_o likewise_o fall_v hard_a upon_o they_o also_o who_o disesteem_v or_o less_o esteem_v a_o national_a ministry_n because_o it_o be_v national_a or_o make_v such_o according_a to_o a_o national_a establishment_n these_o seem_v to_o be_v of_o one_o mind_n and_o almighty_a god_n of_o another_o when_o he_o esteem_v nation_n to_o be_v join_v to_o he_o and_o to_o be_v his_o people_n by_o that_o for_o which_o they_o separate_v their_o pretence_n that_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o for_o three_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n be_v carry_v on_o only_o in_o a_o free_a congregational_a way_n in_o great_a or_o lesser_a voluntary_a association_n and_o therefore_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v so_o now_o seem_v very_o inconsiderable_a because_o what_o be_v do_v in_o that_o kind_n then_o be_v do_v by_o way_n of_o necessity_n because_o they_o have_v not_o opportunity_n of_o a_o better_a not_o but_o that_o they_o long_v for_o and_o pray_v for_o such_o king_n as_o will_v use_v their_o authority_n and_o power_n for_o the_o propagation_n and_o furtherance_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n as_o well_o as_o for_o the_o defence_n of_o it_o and_o the_o professor_n of_o it_o and_o they_o esteem_v it_o no_o small_a favour_n from_o god_n when_o at_o last_o they_o obtain_v it_o in_o constantine_n a_o christian_a cesar_n who_o use_v that_o power_n of_o he_o for_o the_o establish_n the_o christian_a religion_n and_o worship_n of_o the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o for_o the_o order_n and_o regulate_v many_o thing_n relate_v to_o the_o more_o commodious_a and_o orderly_o carry_v on_o the_o ministration_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o the_o people_n of_o god_n then_o existent_a in_o the_o empire_n be_v bring_v in_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n express_v themselves_o thus_o upon_o that_o occasion_n now_o be_v come_v salvation_n and_o strength_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o god_n and_o the_o power_n of_o his_o christ_n as_o i_o show_v before_o rev._n 12.10_o 2._o it_o may_v be_v just_o question_v whether_o it_o be_v worth_a the_o while_n for_o man_n to_o dispute_v against_o the_o be_v of_o a_o national_a church_n in_o new_a testament_n time_n consider_v that_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n nation_n reform_v from_o paganism_n and_o popery_n be_v style_v god_n kingdom_n and_o consider_v likewise_o that_o the_o scripture_n style_v the_o same_o people_n and_o in_o the_o same_o respect_n sometime_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o sometime_o his_o church_n and_o therefore_o it_o shall_v seem_v no_o more_o improper_a to_o call_v a_o christian_a nation_n a_o church_n of_o god_n than_o it_o be_v to_o call_v it_o a_o kingdom_n of_o god_n which_o yet_o the_o scripture_n style_v so_o 3._o it_o may_v be_v observe_v yet_o far_o that_o the_o kingdom_n or_o nation_n which_o have_v be_v reform_v from_o popery_n be_v before_o such_o reformation_n be_v make_v but_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n notwithstanding_o much_o of_o what_o pertain_v to_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v then_o own_v and_o profess_v in_o they_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n by_o who_o the_o book_n of_o revelation_n be_v indict_v we_o see_v style_v they_o so_o in_o their_o unreformed_a state_n the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n be_v become_v etc._n etc._n yet_o they_o then_o in_o their_o unreformed_a state_n worship_v the_o true_a god_n and_o his_o son_n christ_n jesus_n they_o own_v the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o use_v the_o same_o creed_n which_o the_o reform_a churches_n themselves_o use_v and_o yet_o we_o see_v they_o be_v in_o that_o state_n style_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n but_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n when_o as_o under_o their_o reform_a state_n they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o christ_n like_a as_o almighty_a god_n for_o the_o like_a reason_n esteem_v the_o nation_n of_o the_o jew_n who_o have_v be_v his_o own_o church_n and_o people_n but_o as_o ethiopian_n unto_o he_o amos_n 9.7_o and_o tell_v they_o by_o another_o prophet_n you_o be_v not_o my_o people_n and_o i_o will_v not_o be_v your_o god_n hos_n 1.10_o for_o though_o they_o have_v his_o ordinance_n among_o they_o and_o boast_v of_o their_o temple-worship_n cry_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v these_o yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n they_o burn_v incense_n unto_o baal_n and_o walk_v after_o other_o god_n jer._n 7._o they_o divide_v their_o worship_n between_o the_o true_a god_n and_o baal_n and_o do_v swear_v by_o the_o lord_n and_o by_o malcham_n zeph._n 1.5_o and_o upon_o this_o account_n it_o be_v that_o god_n say_v of_o they_o by_o his_o prophet_n they_o be_v unto_o i_o as_o a_o speckled_a bird_n of_o a_o religion_n of_o several_a colour_n jer._n 12.9_o for_o this_o spiritual_a whoredom_n especial_o it_o be_v that_o almighty_a god_n who_o have_v once_o espouse_v that_o people_n to_o himself_o give_v they_o a_o bill_n of_o divorce_n at_o last_o break_v up_o house_n turn_v they_o out_o of_o door_n and_o send_v they_o out_o of_o his_o land_n until_o they_o shall_v repent_v and_o reform_v and_o if_o we_o compare_v these_o thing_n with_o the_o spiritual_a whoredom_n wherewith_o mystical_a babylon_n be_v charge_v and_o for_o which_o with_o other_o heinous_a crime_n she_o be_v threaten_v in_o this_o book_n of_o revelation_n it_o will_v not_o be_v at_o all_o hard_a to_o conceive_v why_o nation_n while_o popish_a be_v style_v and_o esteem_v but_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n and_o this_o if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o be_v argument_n enough_o to_o prevail_v with_o all_o such_o as_o will_v not_o be_v disow_v by_o god_n to_o be_v none_o or_o to_o become_v none_o of_o their_o communion_n who_o be_v thus_o disow_v by_o he_o and_o thus_o we_o have_v see_v how_o both_o from_o the_o light_n and_o law_n of_o nature_n the_o reason_n of_o the_o thing_n and_o from_o divine_a revelation_n also_o the_o great_a expediency_n at_o least_o of_o the_o public_a exercise_n of_o god_n worship_n in_o the_o way_n of_o national_a establishment_n be_v warrant_v and_o approve_v of_o this_o than_o may_v be_v a_o caution_n to_o man_n who_o live_v in_o any_o such_o reform_a nation_n as_o we_o have_v discourse_v of_o and_o as_o we_o be_v to_o take_v heed_n of_o act_v in_o matter_n ecclesiastical_a or_o pertain_v to_o church_n communion_n as_o if_o they_o live_v in_o a_o popish_a or_o pagan_a nation_n by_o disow_v and_o by_o separate_v from_o the_o national_a way_n of_o worship_n lest_o thereby_o they_o discountenance_v and_o disparage_v what_o god_n approve_v of_o and_o disown_n that_o for_o which_o god_n own_v such_o a_o nation_n for_o his_o kingdom_n it_o be_v true_a the_o primitive_a christian_n who_o live_v in_o pagan_a country_n and_o those_o since_o which_o have_v live_v in_o popish_a have_v be_v necessitate_v in_o duty_n to_o be_v separate_a in_o their_o christian_a communion_n from_o their_o national_a worship_n as_o much_o as_o they_o be_v oblige_v not_o to_o be_v idolater_n but_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o false_a worship_n and_o defect_n in_o that_o which_o be_v true_a the_o best_a church_n constitution_n and_o the_o best_a church_n administration_n which_o have_v man_n not_o divine_o inspire_v for_o the_o order_n of_o they_o be_v liable_a to_o humane_a defect_n and_o if_o humane_a defect_n even_o in_o god_n worship_n be_v not_o to_o be_v endure_v for_o the_o sake_n of_o communion_n in_o the_o worship_n itself_o there_o can_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o church_n communion_n be_v enjoy_v among_o christian_n because_o we_o can_v say_v there_o be_v any_o in_o this_o imperfect_a state_n in_o which_o we_o be_v without_o defect_n but_o then_o the_o question_n will_v be_v what_o defect_n be_v to_o be_v endure_v in_o god_n worship_n rather_o than_o communion_n in_o it_o shall_v be_v forsake_v and_o what_o be_v intolerable_a and_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o which_o communion_n in_o the_o worship_n be_v to_o be_v decline_v and_o here_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o impossible_a warrantable_o to_o determine_v any_o defect_n intolerable_a which_o do_v not_o alter_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o worship_n and_o make_v it_o become_v false_a worship_n that_o do_v not_o destroy_v or_o defeat_v the_o end_n for_o which_o true_a worship_n serve_v who_o be_v he_o that_o will_v undertake_v to_o determine_v for_o what_o defect_n which_o
case_n much_o rather_o than_o those_o which_o tend_v to_o aggravate_v a_o matter_n charity_n think_v not_o evil_a be_v not_o easy_o provoke_v bear_v all_o thing_n believe_v all_o thing_n hope_v all_o thing_n endure_v all_o thing_n and_o by_o these_o mean_v charitable_a man_n have_v hold_v of_o other_o and_o keep_v they_o from_o fly_v out_o unless_o of_o very_o bad_a mind_n and_o ill_a temper_n the_o truth_n be_v charity_n be_v that_o to_o catholic_n communion_n which_o the_o soul_n be_v to_o the_o natural_a body_n the_o life_n and_o spirit_n of_o it_o that_o preserve_v it_o in_o a_o healthful_a condition_n but_o so_o far_o as_o charity_n be_v want_v in_o communion_n so_o far_o that_o communion_n be_v sickly_a and_o languish_a and_o void_a of_o its_o true_a spirit_n and_o life_n 2._o the_o other_o bond_n by_o which_o christian_n be_v bind_v up_o together_o in_o one_o catholic_n communion_n be_v the_o bond_n of_o peace_n ephes_n 4.3_o endeavour_v to_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n so_o that_o we_o see_v peace_n be_v the_o bond_n by_o which_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v keep_v now_o this_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v that_o oneness_n of_o mind_n and_o oneness_n of_o practice_n which_o holy_a man_n inspire_v by_o the_o spirit_n have_v teach_v all_o christian_n to_o observe_v in_o reference_n to_o faith_n worship_n and_o love_n that_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v all_o of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o faith_n use_v the_o same_o worship_n and_o have_v the_o same_o love_n to_o one_o another_o which_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o which_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o it_o do_v consist_v as_o i_o have_v already_o show_v when_o st._n paul_n beseech_v the_o christian_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o they_o will_v all_o speak_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o division_n among_o they_o but_o that_o they_o will_v be_v perfect_o join_v together_o in_o the_o same_o mind_n and_o in_o the_o same_o judgement_n he_o do_v not_o say_v in_o reference_n to_o what_o 1_o cor._n 1.10_o but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v suppose_v that_o they_o ready_o understand_v his_o exhortation_n to_o refer_v to_o these_o great_a article_n of_o christianity_n the_o like_a we_o have_v in_o phil._n 2.1_o 2._o save_o that_o love_n be_v there_o particular_o instance_a in_o if_o there_o be_v therefore_o any_o consolation_n in_o christ_n if_o any_o comfort_n of_o love_n if_o any_o fellowship_n of_o the_o spirit_n if_o any_o bowel_n and_o mercy_n fulfil_v you_o my_o joy_n that_o you_o be_v like_o mind_a have_v the_o same_o love_n be_v of_o one_o accord_n of_o one_o mind_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n than_o be_v the_o unity_n of_o christian_n in_o those_o thing_n in_o which_o they_o have_v communion_n or_o their_o unity_n in_o communion_n and_o this_o be_v we_o see_v to_o be_v keep_v or_o preserve_v by_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n now_o this_o peace_n consist_v chief_o in_o christian_n avoid_v difference_n among_o themselves_o as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v but_o if_o difference_n do_v arise_v than_o this_o peace_n consist_v in_o such_o gentleness_n moderation_n and_o calmness_n of_o behaviour_n in_o christian_n one_o towards_o another_o as_o by_o reason_n whereof_o their_o christian_a converse_n be_v not_o interrupt_v nor_o their_o communion_n disturb_v their_o difference_n notwithstanding_o it_o be_v true_a indeed_o in_o this_o imperfect_a state_n it_o can_v be_v but_o that_o there_o will_v be_v difference_n of_o opinion_n among_o christian_n about_o lesser_a thing_n not_o essential_a to_o communion_n especial_o concern_v such_o circumstantial_a matter_n as_o be_v leave_v undetermined_a in_o scripture_n except_o only_o by_o general_a rule_n for_o consider_v that_o more_o christian_n be_v weak_a than_o those_o that_o be_v strong_a and_o less_o spiritual_a both_o in_o point_n of_o knowledge_n and_o in_o the_o grace_n of_o humility_n meekness_n and_o charity_n and_o more_o unmortified_a in_o self-will_n and_o self-conceit_n it_o can_v be_v otherwise_o but_o that_o there_o will_v be_v difference_n among_o christian_n but_o yet_o if_o the_o great_a the_o wise_a and_o the_o better_a sort_n of_o christian_n do_v not_o slight_a and_o despise_v those_o that_o differ_v from_o they_o through_o weakness_n of_o judgement_n or_o prejudice_n of_o education_n nor_o violent_o oppose_v they_o but_o patient_o bear_v with_o they_o and_o wise_o insinuate_v to_o they_o by_o degree_n those_o thing_n which_o may_v help_v they_o and_o by_o condescension_n become_v all_o thing_n to_o they_o for_o their_o good_a so_o far_o as_o innocent_o they_o can_v peace_n may_v very_o well_o be_v preserve_v among_o they_o which_o otherwise_o differ_v in_o many_o thing_n not_o but_o that_o offence_n will_v come_v when_o the_o best_a man_n have_v do_v the_o best_a they_o can_v to_o prevent_v it_o for_o this_o will_v fall_v out_o so_o long_o as_o there_o be_v those_o among_o christian_n who_o lust_n and_o passion_n be_v unmortified_a but_o i_o be_o show_v how_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v keep_v in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n among_o they_o that_o differ_v in_o mind_n and_o opinion_n about_o circumstantial_a matter_n and_o that_o they_o may_v converse_v very_o love_o together_o where_o unmortified_a lust_n and_o passion_n do_v not_o prevail_v notwithstanding_o such_o difference_n the_o wise_a and_o good_a carriage_n of_o good_a man_n towards_o those_o that_o differ_v will_v have_v a_o great_a influence_n upon_o they_o if_o not_o present_o to_o reconcile_v they_o in_o opinion_n yet_o to_o charm_v they_o into_o a_o peaceable_a demeanour_n if_o they_o be_v not_o man_n of_o ill_a temper_n god_n himself_o make_v allowance_n unto_o man_n that_o differ_v conscientious_o about_o lesser_a thing_n and_o not_o out_o of_o affectation_n though_o they_o err_v in_o judgement_n so_o long_o as_o their_o error_n proceed_v not_o from_o a_o corrupt_a will_n or_o pride_n of_o mind_n rom._n 14._o and_o good_a man_n so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v partaker_n of_o a_o divine_a nature_n will_v do_v so_o too_o and_o such_o difference_n be_v very_o consistent_a with_o catholic_n communion_n in_o peace_n and_o love_n so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o much_o man_n differ_v in_o opinion_n about_o circumstantial_a matter_n in_o religion_n that_o break_v peace_n destroy_v charity_n and_o disturb_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n but_o man_n unruly_a lust_n and_o passion_n of_o pride_n envy_n and_o ill_a will_n which_o take_v the_o advantage_n thence_o to_o vent_v themselves_o against_o one_o another_o in_o irregular_a practice_n from_o whence_o come_v war_n and_o brawling_n among_o you_o come_v they_o not_o hence_o even_o of_o your_o lust_n that_o war_n in_o your_o member_n jam._n 4.1_o though_o christian_n then_o may_v differ_v in_o opinion_n in_o some_o lesser_a thing_n yet_o so_o long_o as_o they_o agree_v in_o the_o substance_n of_o faith_n and_o worship_n and_o so_o long_o as_o they_o manage_v themselves_o in_o their_o difference_n so_o as_o that_o peace_n be_v not_o break_v by_o any_o irregular_a or_o troublesome_a behaviour_n their_o communion_n in_o faith_n worship_n and_o fellowship_n or_o mutual_a love_n can_v suffer_v much_o by_o such_o difference_n for_o peace_n and_o charity_n support_v each_o other_o and_o propagate_v each_o other_o and_o the_o apostle_n do_v very_o well_o therefore_o couple_v they_o together_o in_o his_o exhortation_n col._n 3.14_o 15._o above_o all_o these_o thing_n put_v on_o charity_n which_o be_v the_o bond_n of_o perfectness_n and_o let_v the_o peace_n of_o god_n rule_n in_o your_o heart_n to_o which_o you_o be_v call_v in_o one_o body_n the_o peace_n here_o mean_v to_o which_o christian_n be_v call_v by_o be_v unite_v in_o one_o body_n be_v peaceable_a live_n one_o with_o another_o 3._o beside_o the_o bond_n of_o charity_n and_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n there_o be_v a_o three_o thing_n very_o necessary_a to_o the_o unity_n and_o peaceable_a communion_n in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o be_v prudent_a and_o moderate_a government_n the_o peace_n and_o purity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v two_o great_a end_n of_o the_o government_n in_o it_o both_o which_o conduce_v very_o much_o to_o the_o comfortable_a communion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o the_o christian_n unanimity_n in_o it_o in_o reference_n to_o which_o moderation_n be_v very_o necessary_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o external_a manner_n and_o circumstance_n of_o worship_n as_o namely_o that_o the_o term_n of_o communion_n therein_o be_v make_v as_o easy_a as_o will_v well_o consist_v with_o public_a edification_n and_o comely_a order_n for_o when_o they_o be_v so_o man_n will_v have_v no_o tolerable_a pretence_n upon_o account_n of_o conscience_n to_o refuse_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n therein_o but_o otherwise_o some_o
one_o they_o be_v strict_o bind_v up_o by_o particular_a determination_n in_o the_o other_o they_o be_v leave_v more_o at_o large_a to_o govern_v themselves_o to_o the_o best_a of_o their_o understanding_n by_o general_a rule_n and_o the_o different_a circumstance_n under_o which_o christian_n be_v in_o several_a nation_n will_v necessitate_v they_o to_o use_v some_o difference_n in_o practice_n even_o while_o they_o govern_v themselves_o by_o the_o same_o general_a rule_n do_v all_o thing_n to_o edify_v let_v the_o peace_n of_o god_n rule_n in_o your_o heart_n to_o which_o you_o be_v call_v in_o one_o body_n be_v two_o general_a rule_n and_o christian_n be_v to_o have_v respect_n to_o the_o one_o as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o in_o order_v their_o practice_n the_o same_o circumstance_n of_o worship_n will_v not_o tend_v both_o to_o edification_n and_o to_o peace_n also_o at_o one_o time_n and_o in_o one_o place_n which_o will_v do_v so_o at_o another_o these_o rule_n touch_v edification_n and_o peace_n will_v lead_v a_o man_n to_o do_v otherwise_o in_o his_o communion_n in_o public_a worship_n with_o the_o church_n in_o france_n in_o geneva_n in_o holland_n if_o he_o shall_v sojourn_v in_o these_o place_n than_o he_o do_v while_o he_o be_v here_o in_o england_n and_o observe_v the_o usage_n of_o this_o national_a church_n for_o it_o will_v not_o tend_v to_o peace_n and_o edification_n for_o such_o a_o one_o to_o make_v a_o disturbance_n by_o labour_v to_o set_v on_o foot_n among_o they_o all_o the_o same_o circumstance_n of_o worship_n he_o have_v be_v accustom_v to_o here_o because_o he_o like_v they_o better_o and_o the_o same_o be_v true_a of_o such_o as_o come_v from_o those_o foreign_a church_n to_o sojourn_v here_o or_o in_o any_o other_o reform_a church_n the_o right_a way_n of_o maintain_v true_a catholic_n communion_n be_v to_o refuse_v communion_n with_o no_o church_n in_o any_o country_n that_o be_v orthodox_n in_o the_o faith_n and_o in_o the_o essence_n of_o worship_n and_o be_v not_o schismatical_a notwithstanding_o any_o difference_n there_o may_v be_v in_o the_o degree_n of_o usefulness_n in_o the_o external_a manner_n of_o worship_n between_o one_o church_n and_o another_o so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v all_o useful_a to_o their_o end_n in_o some_o good_a measure_n and_o agreeable_a to_o general_a rule_n in_o that_o case_n i_o can_v take_v he_o for_o a_o right_a catholic_n christian_n that_o can_v have_v no_o communion_n with_o any_o church_n where_o he_o come_v but_o where_o the_o external_a mode_n of_o worship_n agree_v with_o that_o which_o he_o most_o affect_v when_o i_o be_o at_o rome_n i_o fast_o on_o saturday_n when_o i_o be_o here_o at_o milan_n i_o do_v not_o say_z st._n ambrose_n to_o st._n austin_n 5._o one_o external_a mode_n of_o worship_n be_v not_o therefore_o useless_a because_o another_o be_v more_o useful_a for_o a_o great_a degree_n of_o usefulness_n herein_o do_v not_o exclude_v a_o less_o but_o only_o excel_v it_o the_o gesture_n of_o kneel_v in_o prayer_n be_v better_a and_o more_o suitable_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o duty_n than_o that_o of_o stand_v yet_o that_o do_v not_o make_v it_o unlawful_a to_o pray_v stand_v one_o version_n of_o the_o psalm_n be_v more_o useful_a to_o its_o end_n than_o another_o yet_o that_o do_v not_o make_v it_o unlawful_a to_o join_v with_o those_o who_o use_v that_o which_o be_v less_o useful_a nay_o i_o will_v say_v more_o than_o this_o that_o mode_n of_o worship_n which_o be_v best_a under_o some_o circumstance_n be_v not_o so_o under_o other_o as_o when_o it_o can_v be_v use_v without_o cause_v such_o a_o division_n in_o the_o church_n as_o will_v produce_v most_o pernicious_a effect_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o church_n itself_o and_o to_o religion_n upon_o which_o account_n the_o dissenter_n ought_v to_o esteem_v it_o better_a to_o join_v in_o the_o worship_n perform_v by_o the_o liturgy_n than_o in_o that_o perform_v in_o their_o assembly_n under_o the_o ill_a circumstance_n which_o do_v attend_v it_o though_o they_o esteem_v they_o to_o be_v better_a abstract_o consider_v 6._o if_o a_o less_o degree_n of_o usefulness_n in_o the_o external_a manner_n of_o worship_n shall_v be_v allow_v to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o separation_n from_o communion_n in_o it_o where_o it_o be_v use_v our_o church_n division_n will_v be_v irreparable_a and_o beyond_o all_o remedy_n in_o who_o hand_n soever_o the_o order_v the_o external_a circumstance_n and_o manner_n of_o worship_n may_v fall_v be_v they_o the_o dissenter_n themselves_o or_o any_o other_o for_o when_o they_o shall_v have_v do_v the_o best_a they_o can_v therein_o there_o will_v be_v other_o who_o will_v find_v out_o some_o circumstantial_a defect_n in_o it_o that_o will_v in_o their_o judgement_n and_o perhaps_o according_a to_o truth_n too_o render_v it_o less_o useful_a than_o it_o be_v capable_a of_o be_v make_v there_o be_v such_o a_o difference_n in_o the_o thought_n and_o apprehension_n of_o wise_a and_o good_a man_n themselves_o and_o much_o more_o in_o those_o that_o be_v weak_a that_o it_o be_v impossible_a unless_o they_o be_v all_o divine_o inspire_v that_o they_o shall_v all_o agree_v to_o a_o circumstance_n in_o such_o a_o thing_n as_o the_o external_a manner_n of_o worship_n but_o that_o some_o will_v think_v this_o and_o other_o will_v think_v that_o may_v have_v be_v better_o do_v than_o it_o be_v there_o be_v a_o necessity_n therefore_o unless_o we_o resolve_v to_o perpetuate_v division_n and_o separation_n to_o take_v up_o with_o the_o best_a external_a way_n and_o manner_n of_o public_a worship_n we_o can_v obtain_v from_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o nation_n so_o long_o as_o it_o be_v competent_o useful_a to_o its_o end_n and_o not_o to_o divide_v and_o separate_v upon_o account_n of_o our_o esteem_v it_o less_o useful_a than_o we_o desire_v for_o otherwise_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v expect_v that_o the_o best_a wisdom_n that_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o nation_n shall_v ever_o be_v able_a to_o find_v out_o any_o way_n or_o mean_n of_o cure_v our_o church_n division_n and_o to_o put_v a_o end_n to_o our_o unchristianlike_a separation_n and_o to_o give_v liberty_n for_o every_o one_o to_o do_v that_o which_o he_o esteem_v best_o be_v far_a of_o all_o from_o work_v such_o a_o rule_n object_n but_o it_o may_v be_v it_o will_v be_v say_v and_o indeed_o be_v allege_v by_o some_o that_o since_o every_o man_n be_v to_o worship_n and_o serve_v god_n in_o the_o best_a manner_n he_o can_v it_o follow_v that_o therefore_o if_o there_o be_v one_o way_n of_o public_a worship_n which_o he_o esteem_v better_a than_o another_o he_o be_v to_o make_v use_n of_o that_o when_o he_o have_v opportunity_n of_o do_v so_o and_o by_o this_o those_o that_o do_v esteem_v the_o external_a manner_n of_o worship_n use_v in_o separate_a assembly_n to_o be_v better_a than_o that_o perform_v by_o the_o liturgy_n in_o parochial_a congregation_n do_v labour_n to_o defend_v their_o separation_n to_o this_o several_a thing_n be_v to_o be_v say_v 1._o in_o order_v the_o mode_n or_o manner_n of_o public_a worship_n respect_n be_v to_o be_v have_v not_o to_o what_o be_v most_o acceptable_a to_o one_o sort_n of_o man_n only_o but_o to_o what_o be_v useful_a and_o profitable_a for_o the_o whole_a community_n as_o well_o those_o who_o be_v of_o a_o low_a capacity_n as_o those_o of_o a_o high_a as_o well_o those_o who_o desire_v a_o liturgy_n as_o those_o that_o do_v not_o and_o to_o what_o be_v most_o likely_a to_o preserve_v peace_n among_o they_o and_o when_o the_o government_n to_o this_o end_n have_v order_v that_o part_n of_o the_o public_a worship_n shall_v be_v perform_v by_o the_o liturgy_n and_o have_v allow_v a_o liberty_n of_o perform_v part_n of_o it_o without_o by_o pulpit_n prayer_n provision_n be_v thereby_o make_v to_o accommodate_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o in_o the_o external_a manner_n of_o worship_n and_o christian_a ingenuity_n and_o charity_n which_o seek_v not_o her_o own_o will_v teach_v man_n to_o be_v content_a that_o other_o shall_v be_v accommodate_v as_o well_o as_o themselves_o in_o thing_n wherein_o they_o may_v rather_o than_o to_o make_v a_o division_n in_o the_o church_n because_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o order_v just_a as_o they_o will_v have_v they_o and_o of_o this_o true_o christian_a strain_n be_v st._n paul_n which_o make_v he_o say_v i_o please_v all_o man_n in_o all_o thing_n not_o seek_v my_o own_o profit_n but_o the_o profit_n of_o many_o that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v 1_o cor._n 10.33_o and_o that_o it_o have_v be_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n from_o age_n to_o age_n that_o it_o be_v best_o for_o the_o church_n all_o thing_n consider_v that_o the_o
misrepresent_v that_o method_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o general_a tenor_n of_o my_o inquiry_n and_o indeed_o if_o i_o have_v not_o take_v wrong_a measure_n and_o unless_o very_o much_o mistake_v their_o communion_n in_o their_o state_n of_o separation_n if_o take_v altogether_o and_o the_o term_n on_o which_o it_o be_v hold_v must_v needs_o be_v far_o more_o impure_a than_o the_o parochial_a communion_n they_o have_v withdraw_v from_o there_o be_v extreme_n on_o both_o hand_n as_o well_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n as_o on_o the_o left_a and_o there_o be_v a_o proneness_n in_o man_n to_o run_v into_o the_o one_o by_o fly_v from_o the_o other_o and_o good_a man_n especial_o in_o matter_n of_o public_a reformation_n be_v through_o mistake_v zeal_n more_o in_o danger_n of_o run_v into_o a_o extreme_a on_o the_o right_a hand_n than_o into_o one_o on_o the_o left_a and_o in_o fly_v from_o babylon_n to_o run_v beyond_o jerusalem_n and_o there_o be_v a_o danger_n of_o do_v much_o hurt_n in_o the_o church_n by_o over_n as_o well_o as_o there_o be_v by_o under-doing_a and_o both_o extreme_n be_v careful_o to_o be_v avoid_v the_o new_a england_n minister_n in_o their_o answer_n to_o mr._n davenport_n former_o mention_v do_v say_v we_o may_v be_v very_o injurious_a to_o christ_n as_o well_o as_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n by_o too_o much_o straiten_v and_o narrow_n the_o bound_n of_o his_o kingdom_n or_o visible_a church_n here_o on_o earth_n certain_o enlargement_n so_o it_o be_v a_o regular_a enlargement_n be_v a_o very_a desirable_a thing_n in_o church_n reformation_n it_o be_v a_o observable_a truth_n say_v pareus_n on_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o tare_n that_o they_o which_o be_v for_o too_o much_o straitness_n do_v more_o hurt_n than_o profit_n the_o church_n so_o much_o they_o p._n 45._o thus_o the_o mistake_a zeal_n of_o the_o donatist_n and_o novatian_n of_o old_a for_o a_o pure_a church_n and_o pure_a communion_n as_o be_v think_v or_o pretend_v put_v they_o upon_o separate_v from_o other_o orthodox_n christian_n which_o prove_v a_o inlet_n to_o the_o most_o unchristian_a practice_n imaginable_a for_o the_o carry_v on_o their_o undertake_a reformation_n and_o destructive_a of_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o high_a and_o lamentable_o scandalous_a to_o the_o christian_a religion_n in_o the_o doctrinal_a part_n whereof_o notwithstanding_o they_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n all_o agree_v as_o we_o be_v now_o and_o differ_v most_o about_o disciplinary_a point_n as_o they_o do_v then_o such_o a_o strictness_n in_o church_n reformation_n as_o do_v so_o narrow_a and_o lessen_v the_o visible_a church_n as_o to_o endeavour_v to_o reduce_v it_o to_o the_o size_n of_o the_o invisible_a be_v many_o way_n hurtful_a as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o my_o reason_n for_o the_o contrary_n it_o tend_v to_o hinder_v and_o lessen_v the_o great_a work_n of_o thorough_a and_o sound_a conversion_n in_o the_o church_n it_o tend_v to_o hinder_v the_o spread_a and_o propagate_a of_o the_o christian_a religion_n it_o tend_v to_o harden_v man_n in_o a_o unsafe_a condition_n it_o tend_v to_o deprive_v good_a man_n of_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n under_o the_o notion_n of_o bad_a it_o tend_v to_o ruin_v the_o church_n as_o to_o its_o existence_n in_o the_o world_n and_o last_o it_o tend_v to_o beget_v and_o foment_n division_n contention_n feud_n envy_n strife_n and_o undue_a censuring_n among_o christian_n and_o so_o to_o cast_v the_o church_n into_o a_o sickly_a state_n and_o such_o as_o threaten_v her_o spiritual_a life_n beside_o the_o encouragement_n and_o advantage_n which_o be_v thereby_o give_v to_o our_o common_a enemy_n to_o plot_n and_o attempt_v against_o we_o and_o thus_o over_n be_v indeed_o undo_v and_o lest_o any_o shall_v be_v offend_v at_o a_o discourse_n against_o overmuch_o strictness_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o a_o man_n be_v strict_a towards_o himself_o and_o in_o reference_n to_o his_o own_o practice_n and_o his_o be_v strict_a and_o severe_a towards_o other_o in_o deprive_v they_o of_o the_o outward_a privilege_n of_o christian_a professor_n a_o man_n can_v well_o be_v too_o strict_a in_o keep_v a_o narrow_a watch_n over_o his_o own_o heart_n word_n and_o way_n in_o govern_v his_o appetite_n thought_n and_o passion_n tongue_n and_o action_n nor_o do_v this_o kind_n of_o strictness_n depend_v upon_o such_o a_o purity_n of_o communicant_n or_o communion_n in_o which_o no_o carnal_a christian_n have_v any_o share_n but_o it_o depend_v upon_o or_o rather_o it_o consist_v in_o a_o due_a attention_n of_o man_n mind_n to_o their_o own_o duty_n and_o to_o the_o opportunity_n of_o receive_v good_a by_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o guest_n in_o the_o parable_n be_v not_o the_o worse_o nor_o do_v fare_v the_o worse_o for_o that_o there_o be_v one_o among_o they_o that_o have_v not_o on_o the_o wedding_n garment_n the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n do_v not_o the_o less_o avail_n good_a man_n that_o with_o a_o due_a frame_n of_o mind_n wait_v upon_o god_n in_o they_o though_o unregenerate_a man_n participate_v with_o they_o therein_o and_o when_o by_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n capital_a offender_n and_o notorious_a scandalous_a person_n be_v deprive_v of_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n it_o be_v not_o for_o that_o reason_n as_o if_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n be_v the_o less_o useful_a to_o the_o good_a by_o such_o man_n share_v in_o they_o but_o it_o be_v to_o bring_v such_o person_n to_o shame_n and_o by_o that_o mean_n to_o repentance_n and_o to_o free_v the_o church_n from_o that_o dishonour_n which_o otherwise_o will_v stick_v upon_o it_o for_o tolerate_v such_o scandalous_a person_n among_o they_o and_o partly_o also_o for_o admonition_n to_o other_o and_o to_o prevent_v the_o taint_n of_o such_o as_o be_v less_o wary_a by_o their_o ill_a example_n and_o familiar_a converse_n but_o otherwise_o bad_a man_n share_v in_o external_a communion_n with_o the_o church_n be_v no_o way_n likely_a to_o hinder_v the_o growth_n of_o good_a man_n in_o grace_n or_o their_o profit_v by_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n there_o administer_v to_o the_o pure_a all_o thing_n be_v pure_a bad_a man_n can_v in_o the_o least_o pollute_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n to_o the_o good_a by_o their_o participate_v with_o they_o in_o they_o and_o therefore_o if_o god_n will_v have_v such_o as_o be_v not_o obnoxious_a to_o excommunication_n for_o capital_a crime_n though_o not_o regenerate_v to_o be_v continue_v in_o the_o church_n be_v once_o receive_v into_o it_o by_o baptism_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v under_o the_o influence_n of_o his_o ordinance_n for_o their_o conversion_n i_o say_v if_o god_n will_v have_v it_o thus_o in_o order_n to_o their_o conversion_n no_o good_a man_n shall_v envy_v or_o grudge_v they_o this_o benefit_n of_o enjoy_v the_o mean_n of_o such_o conversion_n and_o they_o especial_o shall_v not_o who_o have_v themselves_o be_v convert_v and_o regenerate_v in_o the_o same_o way_n of_o general_a communion_n and_o by_o the_o mean_n therein_o afford_v which_o yet_o have_v be_v the_o case_n i_o doubt_v not_o of_o such_o as_o have_v be_v lead_v man_n in_o model_v this_o new_a church_n way_n as_o it_o have_v be_v of_o many_o other_o for_o their_o congregation_n at_o the_o first_o and_o long_o after_o consist_v scarce_o of_o any_o other_o than_o what_o have_v be_v draw_v out_o of_o the_o parochial_a congregation_n where_o they_o have_v be_v convert_v if_o they_o be_v indeed_o convert_v as_o they_o suppose_v they_o to_o be_v before_o their_o incorporate_n and_o associate_a in_o their_o new_a way_n and_o if_o they_o have_v continue_v in_o the_o same_o way_n wherein_o they_o be_v by_o god_n blessing_n upon_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n they_o therein_o enjoy_v make_v such_o as_o they_o then_o be_v they_o may_v without_o doubt_n have_v attain_v to_o as_o much_o growth_n in_o all_o christian_a virtue_n as_o ever_o they_o do_v afterward_o and_o i_o think_v much_o more_o provide_v they_o have_v but_o diligent_o and_o careful_o improve_v the_o same_o mean_n and_o opportunity_n by_o which_o they_o have_v acquire_v what_o they_o have_v then_o attain_v to_o for_o the_o word_n and_o ordinance_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v the_o mean_n of_o increase_n of_o grace_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o begin_n of_o it_o be_v the_o same_o and_o will_v produce_v the_o same_o effect_n in_o those_o who_o with_o a_o good_a frame_n of_o mind_n attend_v upon_o god_n in_o they_o as_o well_o when_o unregenerate_a man_n share_v in_o they_o as_o when_o they_o do_v not_o and_o therefore_o neither_o the_o holy_a prophet_n or_o other_o holy_a man_n of_o great_a piety_n under_o the_o old_a testament_n nor_o
the_o part_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n shall_v be_v lay_v upon_o the_o wood._n and_o beside_o all_o this_o there_o be_v law_n direct_v how_o the_o priest_n shall_v be_v accoutre_v in_o their_o ministration_n as_o of_o what_o and_o after_o what_o manner_n and_o fashion_n their_o garment_n shall_v be_v make_v and_o when_o put_v on_o and_o when_o put_v off_o and_o i_o may_v instance_n in_o many_o like_a thing_n in_o other_o case_n but_o now_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n it_o be_v far_o otherwise_o there_o we_o be_v direct_v indeed_o in_o the_o substance_n and_o spiritual_a nature_n of_o divine_a worship_n and_o what_o be_v essential_a to_o it_o but_o as_o for_o the_o external_n circumstance_n of_o administration_n thereof_o we_o have_v very_o little_a of_o particular_a direction_n therein_o but_o the_o church_n in_o those_o thing_n be_v leave_v for_o the_o most_o part_n to_o guide_v and_o determine_v herself_o and_o she_o own_o action_n by_o general_a rule_n such_o as_o edification_n peace_n and_o order_n and_o such_o external_n sign_n of_o reverence_n and_o devotion_n as_o natural_a religion_n will_v direct_v man_n in_o and_o indeed_o there_o be_v so_o little_a of_o particular_a direction_n in_o these_o thing_n as_o that_o there_o be_v no_o sort_n of_o christian_n however_o distinguish_v but_o do_v more_o and_o be_v under_o a_o necessity_n of_o do_v more_o in_o the_o external_n manner_n of_o worship_n than_o there_o be_v particular_a direction_n for_o in_o scripture_n there_o be_v a_o command_n for_o baptise_v disciple_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n but_o no_o particular_a direction_n what_o prayer_n shall_v be_v make_v or_o what_o instruction_n shall_v be_v give_v at_o the_o administration_n of_o baptism_n nor_o after_o what_o manner_n or_o form_n the_o party_n baptize_v shall_v by_o himself_o or_o parent_n enter_v into_o covenant_n with_o god_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v touch_v the_o lord_n supper_n there_o be_v no_o particular_a direction_n what_o prayer_n shall_v be_v make_v or_o instruction_n give_v or_o exhortation_n make_v at_o the_o administration_n of_o it_o nor_o after_o what_o manner_n the_o element_n be_v to_o be_v consecrate_a otherwise_o than_o by_o recite_v the_o word_n of_o institution_n nor_o how_o in_o particular_a the_o cup_n be_v to_o be_v bless_v nor_o what_o gesture_n shall_v be_v use_v nor_o when_o and_o how_o often_o it_o shall_v be_v receive_v in_o these_o thing_n church_n in_o several_a nation_n may_v and_o do_v vary_v more_o or_o less_o and_o yet_o all_o be_v well_o do_v so_o long_o as_o they_o keep_v to_o general_a rule_n which_o may_v be_v observe_v and_o keep_v to_o in_o these_o and_o other_o ordinance_n of_o worship_n under_o several_a different_a circumstance_n and_o this_o none_o can_v deny_v and_o so_o far_o public_a prayer_n though_o we_o have_v particular_a rule_n for_o the_o matter_n of_o it_o and_o to_o who_o and_o in_o who_o name_n to_o be_v make_v and_o likewise_o for_o the_o internal_a manner_n yet_o as_o to_o the_o external_n manner_n and_o circumstance_n save_o that_o of_o be_v make_v in_o a_o know_a tongue_n as_o whether_o it_o shall_v be_v make_v in_o a_o set_a form_n or_o without_o except_o the_o direction_n give_v for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o lord_n prayer_n or_o whether_o with_o the_o use_n of_o a_o book_n or_o without_o it_o or_o whether_o kneel_v or_o stand_v or_o how_o many_o shall_v be_v make_v at_o one_o church_n assembly_n these_o thing_n be_v not_o particular_o determine_v one_o way_n or_o other_o but_o be_v leave_v to_o the_o prudence_n of_o man_n to_o use_v one_o or_o another_o according_a as_o the_o exigence_n of_o circumstance_n shall_v require_v or_o their_o governor_n order_n and_o if_o our_o bless_a saviour_n have_v not_o intend_v to_o have_v allow_v such_o a_o liberty_n in_o the_o choice_n of_o external_n circumstance_n of_o worship_n we_o can_v in_o reason_n but_o think_v he_o will_v have_v be_v as_o particular_a in_o determine_v they_o as_o he_o have_v be_v in_o the_o matter_n and_o substance_n of_o worship_n itself_o which_o yet_o we_o see_v he_o have_v not_o be_v for_o he_o can_v not_o but_o know_v it_o impossible_a for_o all_o church_n guide_v not_o immediate_o inspire_v though_o otherwise_o never_o so_o wise_a and_o good_a to_o pitch_v upon_o the_o selfsame_a circumstance_n of_o administration_n where_o they_o have_v only_o general_a rule_n to_o guide_v they_o in_o their_o choice_n and_o according_o experience_n show_v that_o among_o good_a man_n some_o have_v think_v such_o and_o such_o circumstance_n of_o worship_n best_a to_o agree_v with_o general_a rule_n when_o other_o as_o good_a as_o they_o have_v think_v other_o to_o do_v so_o and_o though_o in_o such_o case_n both_o can_v be_v best_o under_o the_o same_o circumstance_n of_o thing_n yet_o that_o which_o be_v not_o best_o in_o itself_o may_v be_v best_a to_o be_v use_v as_o circumstance_n may_v fall_v out_o as_o when_o that_o which_o be_v not_o best_o can_v be_v refuse_v without_o a_o great_a inconvenience_n than_o the_o use_n of_o that_o rather_o than_o a_o better_a do_v amount_v to_o our_o bless_a saviour_n then_o have_v leave_v his_o people_n at_o so_o much_o liberty_n in_o the_o choice_n of_o external_n circumstance_n of_o worship_n as_o we_o see_v he_o have_v it_o argue_v sufficient_o that_o the_o use_n of_o different_a circumstantial_a mode_n of_o worship_n be_v not_o at_o all_o displease_v unto_o he_o so_o long_o as_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o general_a rule_n especial_o when_o the_o avoid_n of_o a_o breach_n and_o the_o preservation_n of_o peace_n unity_n and_o good_a will_n in_o the_o church_n do_v influence_n the_o choice_n if_o there_o be_v then_o such_o a_o liberty_n leave_v by_o christ_n unto_o his_o church_n of_o use_v different_a circumstantial_a mode_n of_o worship_n so_o long_o as_o they_o answer_v to_o the_o general_a rule_n as_o none_o can_v with_o any_o colour_n of_o reason_n deny_v but_o there_o be_v than_o it_o can_v but_o be_v a_o great_a abuse_n of_o this_o liberty_n for_o christian_n so_o to_o contend_v for_o one_o of_o these_o circumstantial_a mode_n of_o worship_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o other_o as_o to_o separate_v and_o break_v communion_n about_o it_o and_o thereby_o to_o involve_v the_o church_n in_o unpeaceable_a strife_n and_o contention_n disaffection_n and_o feud_n when_o it_o be_v but_o matter_n of_o liberty_n to_o use_v one_o or_o another_o and_o not_o matter_n of_o indispensable_a duty_n to_o use_v one_o only_a and_o not_o the_o other_o it_o can_v but_o be_v a_o abuse_n of_o such_o a_o liberty_n to_o make_v use_n of_o it_o to_o a_o public_a hurt_n to_o the_o church_n the_o make_v use_n of_o that_o which_o be_v but_o only_a matter_n of_o liberty_n when_o to_o do_v so_o cause_v a_o brother_n to_o offend_v be_v severe_o condemn_v by_o st._n paul_n how_o much_o more_o than_o be_v the_o make_v use_n of_o such_o liberty_n to_o be_v blame_v when_o it_o tend_v to_o a_o great_a and_o public_a mischief_n in_o the_o church_n st._n paul_n say_v brethren_n you_o have_v be_v call_v unto_o liberty_n only_o use_v not_o liberty_n for_o a_o occasion_n to_o the_o flesh_n but_o by_o love_n serve_v one_o another_o gal._n 5.13_o that_o the_o use_n of_o this_o liberty_n we_o speak_v of_o have_v be_v a_o occasion_n for_o the_o flesh_n to_o show_v itself_o and_o play_v its_o part_n be_v sad_o visible_a in_o that_o variance_n strife_n emulation_n and_o envy_v which_o have_v be_v cause_v thereby_o which_o be_v work_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o such_o too_o that_o as_o st._n paul_n say_v they_o which_o do_v such_o thing_n shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n gal._n 5.19_o 20_o 21._o i_o know_v it_o will_v be_v say_v that_o if_o it_o be_v a_o abuse_n of_o liberty_n to_o contend_v so_o much_o for_o the_o use_n of_o one_o external_n way_n and_o manner_n of_o worship_n when_o another_o be_v lawful_a as_o well_o as_o that_o and_o when_o to_o do_v so_o tend_v to_o strife_n and_o division_n and_o the_o destruction_n of_o charity_n than_o it_o must_v be_v alike_o abuse_v of_o liberty_n to_o impose_v the_o use_n of_o another_o when_o such_o a_o imposition_n be_v attend_v with_o the_o same_o or_o like_o evil_a or_o inconvenience_n as_o we_o see_v the_o imposition_n of_o that_o prescribe_v by_o the_o liturgy_n be_v to_o this_o i_o shall_v say_v but_o these_o two_o thing_n 1._o if_o we_o shall_v suppose_v this_o to_o be_v so_o as_o they_o object_n yet_o the_o abuse_n of_o a_o liberty_n one_o way_n by_o the_o author_n of_o such_o a_o imposition_n do_v not_o at_o all_o privilege_n the_o abuse_n of_o a_o liberty_n by_o other_o in_o the_o contrary_a extreme_a 2._o the_o imposition_n they_o speak_v of_o be_v no_o necessary_a cause_n of_o division_n and_o separation_n
or_o of_o the_o ill_a effect_n of_o they_o and_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v any_o occasion_n of_o they_o yet_o there_o be_v a_o vast_a difference_n between_o the_o be_v a_o accidental_a occasion_n of_o division_n and_o actual_o to_o divide_v and_o separate_v causeless_o and_o look_v how_o much_o the_o one_o be_v worse_a than_o the_o other_o by_o so_o much_o must_v the_o dissenter_n be_v more_o in_o fault_n by_o their_o actual_a division_n and_o separation_n than_o they_o can_v with_o any_o appearance_n of_o reason_n pretend_v the_o other_o to_o be_v for_o the_o severity_n of_o their_o imposition_n now_o that_o the_o imposition_n of_o the_o liturgy_n be_v no_o necessary_a cause_n of_o division_n and_o separation_n will_v appear_v in_o that_o the_o defect_n object_v against_o it_o be_v no_o sufficient_a cause_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o worship_n perform_v according_a to_o it_o and_o this_o i_o hope_v i_o have_v make_v out_o to_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o any_o man_n who_o prejudice_n be_v not_o great_a than_o his_o reason_n in_o my_o inquire_v into_o the_o nature_n of_o schism_n among_o the_o follow_a discourse_n in_o which_o discourse_n i_o have_v endeavour_v to_o remove_v those_o bar_n and_o stumbling-block_n out_o of_o the_o dissenter_n way_n which_o have_v keep_v they_o from_o communion_n with_o our_o parochial_a congregation_n and_o this_o with_o a_o design_n of_o ease_n to_o they_o as_o well_o as_o service_n to_o the_o church_n otherways_o but_o this_o their_o narrow_n and_o lessen_v the_o extent_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o the_o term_n of_o admission_n into_o it_o and_o of_o share_n in_o the_o external_n privilege_n of_o it_o and_o likewise_o their_o confine_v the_o administration_n of_o its_o worship_n to_o one_o circumstantial_a mode_n as_o only_o lawful_a when_o almighty_a god_n have_v not_o do_v so_o be_v of_o very_o pernicious_a consequence_n for_o it_o have_v we_o see_v divide_v the_o protestant_n among_o themselves_o and_o cast_v they_o into_o party_n and_o then_o engage_v they_o in_o contentious_a dispute_n one_o against_o another_o which_o have_v beget_v a_o kind_n of_o strangeness_n and_o shiness_fw-mi in_o they_o towards_o each_o other_o yea_o and_o disaffection_n too_o and_o the_o opposition_n beget_v upon_o this_o account_n rise_v still_o high_o and_o high_o and_o more_o and_o more_o threaten_v ruin_n to_o both_o party_n first_o and_o last_o and_o the_o papist_n themselves_o can_v never_o have_v contrive_v a_o more_o likely_a way_n to_o disgrace_v the_o reformation_n to_o lay_v low_a the_o protstant_a interest_n to_o enfeeble_v its_o strength_n and_o to_o break_v down_o its_o fence_n and_o make_v way_n for_o the_o return_n of_o popery_n than_o we_o ourselves_o have_v take_v by_o divide_v ourselves_o by_o needless_a and_o unreasonable_a scruple_n and_o by_o make_v a_o reformation_n of_o the_o reformation_n as_o necessary_a as_o the_o first_o reformation_n from_o popery_n be_v and_o for_o want_v of_o it_o to_o make_v a_o second_o separation_n as_o necessary_a as_o the_o first_o for_o what_o will_v or_o can_v they_o do_v more_o than_o separate_v in_o case_n popery_n be_v in_o place_n of_o protestant_a worship_n and_o however_o a_o emendation_n in_o some_o thing_n of_o a_o ecclesiastical_a concern_n may_v be_v very_o convenient_a and_o desirablee_v when_o it_o can_v be_v have_v in_o a_o legal_a way_n yet_o to_o make_v this_o as_o necessary_a as_o the_o first_o reformation_n from_o popery_n be_v and_o a_o separation_n from_o parochial_a communion_n for_o want_n of_o it_o as_o necessary_a as_o our_o first_o separation_n from_o popery_n be_v be_v so_o unreasonble_a that_o it_o be_v a_o marvellous_a thing_n that_o man_n of_o any_o reputation_n for_o wisdom_n shall_v not_o see_v it_o and_o be_v full_a of_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o and_o so_o it_o be_v likewise_o that_o they_o shall_v run_v so_o desperate_a a_o hazard_n as_o they_o do_v of_o lose_v all_o the_o benefit_n they_o have_v of_o the_o national_a reformation_n from_o popery_n rather_o than_o be_v deny_v or_o want_v that_o further_a reformation_n as_o they_o esteem_v it_o which_o they_o desire_v and_o be_v it_o not_o marvellous_a also_o that_o they_o will_v not_o do_v what_o they_o can_v do_v towards_o prevent_v of_o it_o by_o comply_v with_o public_a order_n as_o far_o as_o they_o can_v for_o they_o themselves_o have_v give_v occasion_n to_o believe_v that_o very_o many_o especial_o of_o the_o more_o know_v of_o they_o can_v join_v in_o the_o common_a prayer_n make_v in_o our_o parochial_a assembly_n yea_o and_o more_o than_o so_o however_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v they_o refrain_v from_o do_v so_o and_o one_o will_v think_v the_o apostle_n injunction_n if_o it_o be_v dossible_a and_o as_o much_o as_o in_o you_o lie_v live_v peaceable_o with_o all_o man_n shall_v weigh_v more_o with_o they_o than_o any_o politic_a consideration_n whatsoever_o especial_o when_o the_o public_a peace_n and_o safety_n be_v so_o much_o concern_v in_o it_o as_o it_o be_v and_o as_o they_o know_v it_o be_v it_o be_v hardly_o to_o be_v believe_v that_o they_o can_v think_v that_o not_o to_o comply_v as_o far_o as_o they_o can_v shall_v be_v a_o more_o likely_a way_n to_o come_v into_o their_o end_n for_n far_o as_o it_o be_v fair_a and_o reasonable_a than_o to_o do_v so_o be_v god_n almighty_n grant_v the_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o our_o peace_n may_v not_o still_o be_v hide_v from_o our_o eye_n i_o have_v be_v inform_v and_o do_v perceive_v that_o many_o of_o the_o dissenter_n can_v come_v to_o church_n but_o can_v not_o kneel_v in_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n by_o reason_n whereof_o they_o be_v obnoxious_a to_o the_o law_n though_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o church_n for_o who_o help_n and_o satisfaction_n in_o this_o case_n i_o shall_v here_o add_v a_o few_o word_n which_o be_v omit_v in_o a_o more_o proper_a place_n one_o reason_n of_o this_o scruple_n of_o they_o be_v take_v from_o our_o saviour_n and_o his_o apostle_n use_v another_o gesture_n at_o the_o first_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n but_o it_o must_v be_v consider_v 1._o that_o if_o the_o circumstance_n attend_v the_o first_o institution_n of_o this_o supper_n shall_v oblige_v we_o to_o a_o imitation_n of_o they_o as_o well_o as_o in_o what_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o ordinance_n itself_o than_o we_o may_v not_o receive_v it_o but_o in_o the_o night_n and_o after_o another_o supper_n be_v first_o eat_v and_o in_o the_o gesture_n and_o posture_n of_o lie_v upon_o couch_n or_o bed_n for_o under_o those_o circumstance_n it_o be_v first_o institute_v and_o receive_v but_o now_o the_o different_a practice_n of_o christian_n in_o after_o time_n do_v declare_v that_o they_o have_v not_o hold_v themselves_o oblige_v to_o imitate_v they_o in_o these_o circumstance_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o reason_n they_o shall_v because_o these_o thing_n be_v but_o accidental_a to_o the_o ordinance_n itself_o and_o be_v all_o occasion_v by_o this_o supper_n be_v institute_v at_o the_o paschal_n supper_n and_o from_o the_o jew_n gesture_n use_v therein_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o their_o country_n and_o the_o alteration_n of_o the_o gesture_n do_v no_o more_o alter_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o ordinance_n than_o the_o alteration_n of_o the_o other_o accidental_a circumstance_n do_v 2._o scripture_n example_n be_v no_o far_o bind_v to_o we_o than_o they_o be_v agreeable_a to_o some_o precept_n or_o rule_n of_o duty_n otherwise_o but_o now_o there_o be_v no_o precept_n enjoin_v any_o one_o gesture_n to_o be_v use_v in_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n as_o exclusive_a of_o any_o other_o and_o therefore_o any_o may_v be_v make_v use_n of_o when_o require_v by_o the_o government_n over_o we_o for_o where_o there_o be_v no_o law_n there_o be_v no_o transgression_n but_o if_o there_o have_v be_v any_o one_o gesture_n require_v by_o our_o saviour_n as_o necessary_a and_o as_o exclusive_a of_o other_o no_o doubt_n but_o st._n paul_n will_v have_v make_v mention_n of_o it_o when_o he_o make_v know_v to_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n what_o he_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o lord_n touch_v his_o last_o supper_n but_o we_o see_v no_o such_o thing_n be_v mention_v by_o he_o chap._n 11._o 3._o the_o jewish_a church_n have_v alter_v the_o gesture_n in_o their_o eat_v the_o passeover_n from_o what_o be_v use_v at_o the_o first_o institution_n of_o it_o our_o saviour_n we_o see_v comply_v there_o with_o and_o conform_v to_o what_o be_v then_o become_v customary_a in_o that_o church_n and_o if_o we_o do_v the_o like_a for_o the_o like_a reason_n who_o can_v blame_v we_o for_o it_o without_o reproach_v our_o bless_a saviour_n their_o other_o reason_n of_o their_o scruple_n be_v take_v from_o the_o papist_n have_v abuse_v this_o gesture_n of_o kneel_v to_o idolatry_n in_o worship_v the_o bread_n by_o
it_o for_o which_o cause_n they_o say_v we_o shall_v not_o use_v it_o in_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n lest_o we_o seem_v to_o sympolize_v with_o they_o therein_o in_o answer_n to_o this_o several_a thing_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v as_o 1._o that_o though_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v strict_o enjoin_v kneel_v at_o the_o elevation_n of_o the_o host_n yet_o in_o the_o act_n of_o receive_v it_o be_v not_o require_v by_o any_o cannon_n or_o constitution_n of_o they_o dr._n john_n burges_n of_o great_a note_n in_o his_o time_n in_o his_o treatise_n touch_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n kneel_v or_o in_o his_o defence_n of_o the_o three_o innocent_a ceremony_n chap._n 21._o pag._n 67._o and_o pag._n 479._o of_o his_o rejoynder_n as_o he_o be_v recite_v for_o i_o have_v not_o his_o book_n have_v these_o word_n with_o we_o the_o bishop_n or_o minister_n communicate_v kneel_v as_o well_o as_o the_o people_n but_o with_o the_o papist_n the_o pope_n when_o himself_o perform_v the_o office_n receive_v sit_v as_o be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n the_o mass_n priest_n receive_v stand_v by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n for_o confirmation_n of_o all_o which_o he_o cite_v several_a author_n he_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o the_o people_n receive_v kneel_v and_o say_v that_o the_o priest_n do_v so_o too_o until_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n beget_v the_o canon_n for_o his_o stand_n but_o he_o deny_v that_o kneel_v in_o the_o very_a time_n of_o receive_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n any_o rite_n of_o or_o for_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n itself_o and_o say_v never_o any_o pope_n enjon_v it_o nor_o be_v there_o any_o direction_n in_o the_o mass_n for_o it_o the_o reverend_a dr._n stilliigfleet_n have_v assert_v much_o to_o the_o same_o effect_n in_o his_o unreasonableness_n of_o separation_n pag._n 15._o 2._o how_o or_o after_o what_o manner_n soever_o kneel_v have_v be_v abuse_v by_o the_o papist_n to_o bad_a purpose_n yet_o the_o abuse_n of_o a_o thing_n otherwise_o lawful_a in_o itself_o do_v not_o make_v the_o use_n of_o it_o unlawful_a when_o separate_v from_o that_o abuse_n kneel_v be_v abuse_v by_o the_o papist_n in_o their_o prayer_n to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o other_o saint_n but_o this_o do_v not_o make_v the_o use_n of_o kneel_v unlawful_a in_o our_o prayer_n to_o almighty_a god_n 3._o our_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n kneel_v in_o compliance_n with_o public_a order_n and_o authority_n can_v be_v no_o appearance_n or_o cause_n of_o suspicion_n of_o bread-worship_n because_o the_o same_o authority_n which_o require_v our_o kneel_v therein_o have_v declare_v in_o the_o rubric_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o office_n of_o communion_n that_o no_o adoration_n be_v thereby_o intend_a or_o aught_o to_o the_o do_v to_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n or_o to_o any_o corporal_a presence_n of_o christ_n natural_a flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o be_v intend_v and_o mean_v for_o a_o signification_n and_o grateful_a acknowledgement_n of_o the_o benesit_n of_o christ_n therein_o give_v by_o this_o we_o see_v all_o appearance_n and_o suspicion_n of_o require_v kneel_v in_o order_n to_o any_o bread-worship_n be_v quite_o take_v away_o 4._o stand_v be_v a_o gesture_n of_o adoration_n as_o well_o as_o kneel_v mark_v xi_o 25._o and_o yet_o the_o dissenter_n do_v not_o think_v it_o unlawful_a for_o that_o reason_n to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n stand_v and_o if_o its_o be_v a_o gesture_n of_o adoration_n be_v no_o just_a exception_n against_o the_o use_n of_o it_o in_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n than_o the_o adoration_n suppose_v or_o employ_v in_o the_o gesture_n of_o kneel_v can_v be_v no_o just_a exception_n against_o the_o use_n of_o that_o gesture_n neither_o in_o the_o performance_n of_o the_o same_o duty_n 5._o kneel_v its_o be_v a_o gesture_n of_o adoration_n be_v so_o far_o from_o make_v the_o use_n of_o it_o unlawful_a in_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n as_o that_o it_o be_v the_o great_a reason_n why_o it_o be_v not_o unlawful_a but_o fit_a and_o convenient_a for_o no_o good_a christian_n will_v deny_v but_o that_o it_o high_o become_v we_o inward_o to_o adore_v our_o bless_a saviour_n in_o the_o act_n of_o receive_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o his_o wonderful_a love_n in_o die_v for_o we_o and_o for_o give_v his_o flesh_n for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n and_o if_o so_o than_o it_o can_v be_v incongruous_a or_o unfit_a to_o express_v and_o signify_v this_o internal_a act_n of_o adoration_n by_o another_o that_o be_v external_a for_o we_o be_v to_o worship_n and_o glorify_v he_o both_o in_o our_o body_n and_o our_o spirit_n and_o now_o i_o think_v no_o man_n atho_fw-mi understand_v and_o consider_v these_o thing_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o think_v it_o unlawful_a to_o kneel_v in_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n the_o content_n or_o the_o head_n of_o enquiry_n query_n i._n what_o be_v the_o true_a notion_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o visible_a pag._n 3_o query_n ii_o what_o be_v it_o which_o prepare_v or_o qualify_v person_n for_o that_o relation_n to_o god_n in_o christ_n which_o make_v they_o visible_a member_n of_o his_o church_n 6._o query_n iii_o what_o may_v that_o be_v by_o which_o people_n be_v make_v visible_a church-member_n 9_o query_n iu._n how_o and_o when_o be_v the_o covenant_n between_o god_n and_o man_n enter_v into_o by_o which_o people_n be_v external_o unite_v to_o christ_n and_o visible_o make_v member_n of_o his_o church_n 13_o query_n v._n how_o can_v infant_n become_v visible_a church-member_n by_o covenant_v with_o god_n since_o they_o seem_v natural_o uncapable_a of_o do_v such_o a_o thing_n 19_o query_n vi_o whether_o in_o the_o baptise_n of_o child_n that_o method_n of_o proceed_v be_v not_o most_o proper_a by_o which_o the_o child_n be_v most_o direct_o make_v to_o enter_v into_o covenant_n with_o god_n by_o their_o parent_n 38_o query_n vii_o for_o what_o reason_n be_v church-membership_a say_v to_o be_v invisible_a as_o well_o as_o visible_a in_o some_o and_o yet_o but_o only_o as_o visible_a in_o other_o and_o from_o whence_o do_v this_o difference_n arise_v 41_o query_n viii_o whether_o man_n be_v no_o otherwise_o member_n of_o the_o church_n as_o visible_a then_o as_o they_o be_v repute_v member_n of_o the_o church_n as_o invisible_a 53_o query_n ix_o whether_o god_n have_v grant_v any_o right_n to_o church-priviledge_n to_o those_o who_o be_v only_o of_o the_o church_n as_o visible_a but_o not_o as_o invisible_a 123_o query_n x._o why_o and_o for_o what_o reason_n may_v it_o be_v conceive_v do_v almighty_a god_n own_o and_z and_o allow_v other_o to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n as_o visible_a than_o only_o such_o as_o be_v of_o the_o church_n as_o invisible_a 173_o query_n xi_o what_o be_v it_o that_o make_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o visible_a and_o particular_a church_n and_o what_o make_v the_o difference_n between_o one_o particular_a church_n and_o another_o 207_o query_n xii_o whether_o from_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o extent_n and_o latitude_n of_o visible_a church-membership_a and_o communion_n which_o have_v be_v discourse_v of_o the_o great_a usefulness_n of_o a_o national_a settlement_n or_o constitution_n for_o the_o public_a emercise_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n in_o all_o part_n of_o a_o nation_n profess_v christianity_n may_v not_o fair_o be_v infer_v and_o conclude_v 225_o query_n xiii_o wherein_o may_v catholick-church_n communion_n consist_v and_o how_o and_o by_o what_o mean_n be_v it_o best_o preserve_v 265_o query_n fourteen_o what_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o schism_n 300_o query_n xv._o suppose_v thing_n touch_v visible_a church-membership_a and_o communion_n to_o be_v as_o they_o have_v be_v represent_v in_o our_o former_a inquiry_n yet_o how_o do_v they_o tend_v to_o lessen_v our_o church-division_n 349_o errata_fw-la the_o run_v title_n of_o the_o book_n mistake_v pag._n 22._o l._n 23._o deal_n since_o p._n 31._o l._n 1._o after_o all_o add_v these_o p._n 39_o l._n 27._o for_o proper_o r._n property_n p._n 48._o l._n 5._o f._n who_o r._n when_o l._n 25._o deal_n also_o p._n 54._o l._n 15._o f._n man_v r._n mens_fw-la p._n 57_o l._n 16._o f._n man_n r._n man_n p._n 61._o l._n 12._o f._n take_v r._n break_v p._n 62._o l._n 2._o f._n in_o r._n on_o p._n 118._o l._n 8._o f._n qualify_v r._n qaalified_a p._n 195._o l._n 2._o f._n bein_z r._n being_z p._n 335._o l._n 19_o f._n rule_n r._n cure_n catholicism_n or_o several_a inquiry_n touch_v the_o nature_n and_o extent_n of_o visible_a church-membership_n and_o communion_n etc._n etc._n notion_n narrow_a than_o those_o which_o will_v hold_v scripture-measure_n concern_v the_o church_n and_o what_o it_o
communion_n in_o the_o institute_v ordinance_n of_o worship_n that_o particular_a church_n be_v constitute_v or_o to_o be_v constitute_v only_o of_o such_o but_o other_o do_v think_v that_o these_o do_v make_v the_o visible_a church_n much_o narrow_a than_o the_o scripture_n do_v and_o do_v hold_v that_o all_o that_o be_v visible_o in_o covenant_n with_o god_n be_v thereby_o join_v in_o relation_n to_o he_o and_o be_v make_v member_n of_o his_o visible_a church_n as_o well_o those_o which_o have_v no_o save_a grace_n as_o those_o that_o have_v our_o business_n then_o for_o the_o present_n will_v be_v to_o consult_v the_o scripture_n in_o this_o case_n before_o god_n have_v a_o church_n in_o the_o world_n by_o institution_n man_n visible_a relation_n to_o god_n be_v know_v by_o their_o worship_v of_o he_o only_o whether_o they_o have_v any_o other_o sign_n of_o save_a grace_n or_o no_o and_o though_o they_o be_v in_o no_o visible_a covenant_n with_o he_o they_o be_v know_v to_o who_o they_o do_v belong_v by_o who_o they_o worship_v every_o man_n walk_v in_o the_o name_n of_o his_o god_n as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v mica_n 4.5_o and_o those_o that_o worship_v a_o strange_a god_n be_v the_o child_n of_o a_o strange_a god_n mal._n 2.11_o as_o those_o that_o worship_v the_o true_a god_n be_v count_v his_o child_n natural_a religion_n especial_o in_o point_n of_o worship_n be_v then_o the_o measure_n of_o judge_a man_n visible_a relation_n to_o god_n but_o when_o almighty_a god_n be_v please_v to_o set_v on_o foot_n and_o begin_v the_o gather_v he_o a_o visible_a church_n out_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n in_o a_o way_n of_o divine_a institution_n he_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o it_o in_o his_o transaction_n with_o abraham_n by_o institute_v and_o ordain_v two_o thing_n 1._o that_o as_o god_n by_o covenant_n engage_v to_o abraham_n to_o be_v his_o god_n and_o the_o god_n of_o his_o seed_n so_o abraham_n and_o his_o seed_n must_v engage_v to_o god_n by_o covenant_n to_o be_v his_o servant_n and_o a_o people_n unto_o he_o 2._o that_o this_o covenant_n shall_v be_v enter_v into_o by_o abraham_n and_o his_o seed_n by_o observe_v such_o a_o sacred_a rite_n as_o god_n institute_v and_o appoint_v for_o that_o purpose_n and_o that_o be_v circumcision_n and_o this_o be_v continue_v for_o this_o use_n until_o the_o messiah_n come_v and_o institute_v baptism_n another_o sacred_a rite_n for_o the_o same_o end_n now_o in_o god_n thus_o sound_v his_o visible_a church_n there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o the_o appoint_v save_a grace_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o charity_n to_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o man_n admission_n into_o his_o church_n by_o circumcision_n but_o the_o lord_n absolute_o command_v that_o abraham_n and_o his_o male_a seed_n after_o he_o and_o all_o bear_v in_o the_o house_n or_o buy_v with_o their_o money_n shall_v be_v circumcise_a without_o any_o limitation_n or_o condition_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o appearance_n of_o save_a grace_n by_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o god_n do_v not_o design_n to_o have_v no_o other_o of_o his_o visible_a church_n than_o such_o as_o have_v save_v grace_n now_o the_o posterity_n of_o abraham_n when_o they_o come_v out_o of_o egypt_n be_v by_o virtue_n of_o their_o covenant_v with_o god_n all_o of_o they_o bad_a as_o well_o as_o good_a visible_o relate_v to_o god_n as_o his_o people_n and_o so_o his_o as_o no_o other_o people_n be_v and_o i_o hope_v we_o may_v safe_o say_v that_o god_n himself_o account_v they_o to_o be_v what_o moses_n and_o other_o by_o divine_a inspiration_n say_v they_o be_v and_o if_o so_o than_o we_o may_v say_v that_o almighty_a god_n do_v account_v they_o all_o bad_a as_o well_o as_o good_a though_o not_o in_o the_o most_o emphatical_a sense_n to_o be_v his_o choose_a elect_a and_o adopt_a people_n deut._n 4.37_o rom._n 9.4_o his_o called_n isa_n 48.12_o a_o people_n near_o unto_o he_o psal_n 148.14_o his_o saint_n his_o holy_a people_n deut._n 7.6_o &_o 33.3_o psal_n 50.5_o his_o child_n deut._n 14.1_o a_o special_a and_o peculiar_a people_n unto_o himself_o deut._n 7.6_o &_o 14.2_o his_o inheritance_n deut._n 9.29_o his_o portion_n deut._n 32.9_o his_o peculiar_a treasure_n psal_n 135.4_o all_o these_o title_n and_o appellation_n give_v they_o by_o god_n or_o by_o man_n inspire_v by_o god_n in_o give_v they_o do_v with_o as_o much_o plainness_n as_o word_n can_v express_v show_v that_o god_n himself_o own_v they_o for_o his_o people_n his_o child_n and_o relate_v to_o he_o in_o such_o a_o sense_n as_o other_o people_n not_o in_o covenant_n with_o he_o be_v not_o now_o that_o they_o be_v not_o thus_o call_v or_o account_v for_o any_o such_o reason_n as_o because_o they_o have_v save_v grace_n or_o because_o they_o be_v repute_v to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n as_o invisible_a will_v appear_v with_o full_a evidence_n for_o the_o same_o inspire_a man_n moses_n at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o in_o the_o same_o book_n in_o and_o by_o which_o god_n own_v they_o for_o his_o people_n under_o many_o of_o the_o foresay_a appellation_n do_v from_o god_n charge_v they_o with_o such_o and_o so_o much_o guilt_n as_o no_o man_n can_v with_o any_o colour_n of_o reason_n say_v be_v consistent_a with_o a_o invisible_a church-state_n thus_o in_o deut._n 9_o thou_o be_v a_o stiff-necked_a people_n vers_n 6._o from_o the_o day_n thou_o do_v depart_v out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n even_o until_o you_o come_v unto_o this_o place_n you_o have_v be_v rebellious_a against_o the_o lord_n vers_n 7._o they_o have_v corrupt_v themselves_o they_o have_v quick_o turn_v aside_o vers_n 12._o i_o have_v see_v this_o people_n and_o behold_v it_o be_v a_o stiff-necked_a people_n vers_fw-la 13._o you_o have_v be_v rebellious_a against_o the_o lord_n from_o the_o day_n that_o i_o know_v you_o vers_n 24._o i_o know_v thy_o rebellion_n and_o thy_o stiff_a neck_n chap._n 31.27_o they_o have_v corrupt_v themselves_o their_o spot_n be_v not_o the_o spot_n of_o his_o child_n they_o be_v a_o perverse_a and_o crooked_a generation_n chap._n 32.5_o when_o the_o lord_n see_v it_o he_o abhor_v they_o because_o of_o the_o provoke_a of_o his_o son_n and_o of_o his_o daughter_n vers_fw-la 19_o a_o froward_a generation_n child_n in_o who_o be_v no_o faith_n vers_fw-la 20._o they_o be_v a_o nation_n void_a of_o counsel_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o understanding_n in_o they_o vers_n 28._o these_o thing_n be_v charge_v on_o they_o general_o and_o in_o the_o gross_a and_o consider_v some_o other_o passage_n there_o be_v great_a cause_n to_o fuspect_v that_o much_o the_o major_a part_n of_o they_o at_o least_o be_v thus_o guilty_a for_o in_o numb_a 14.2_o its_o faid_n that_o all_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n murmur_v against_o moses_n and_o against_o aaron_n and_o the_o whole_a congregation_n say_v will_v god_n we_o have_v die_v in_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n or_o will_v god_n we_o have_v die_v in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o vers_fw-la 10._o all_o the_o congregation_n bid_v stone_n they_o with_o stone_n and_o vers_fw-la 33._o your_o child_n shall_v wander_v in_o the_o wilderness_n forty_o year_n and_o bear_v your_o whoredom_n until_o your_o carcase_n be_v waste_v in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o vers_fw-la 35._o i_o will_v sure_o do_v it_o to_o all_o this_o evil_a congregation_n that_o be_v gather_v together_o against_o i_o and_o vers_fw-la 29._o your_o carcase_n shall_v fall_v in_o this_o wilderness_n and_o all_o that_o be_v number_v of_o you_o according_a to_o your_o whole_a number_n from_o twenty_o year_n old_a and_o upward_a which_o have_v murmur_v against_o i_o all_o these_o thing_n consider_v they_o will_v not_o suffer_v we_o with_o any_o plausible_a pretence_n to_o say_v or_o to_o think_v that_o god_n own_v this_o people_n in_o the_o bulk_n of_o they_o as_o his_o visible_a church_n for_o any_o such_o reason_n as_o because_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v invisible_o relate_v to_o he_o by_o special_a grace_n and_o if_o not_o than_o it_o must_v be_v upon_o some_o or_o all_o of_o these_o account_n follow_v unless_o any_o other_o more_o likely_a can_v be_v think_v of_o which_o i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o foresee_v nor_o to_o suspect_v 1._o they_o be_v in_o some_o sort_n holy_a and_o separate_v unto_o god_n as_o they_o be_v bear_v of_o parent_n who_o be_v in_o covenant_n with_o he_o upon_o which_o account_n they_o be_v call_v a_o holy_a seed_n ezra_n 9.2_o now_o the_o holiness_n of_o person_n always_o signify_v some_o such_o special_a relation_n to_o god_n which_o be_v not_o common_a to_o all_o person_n as_o such_o almighty_a god_n have_v another_o kind_n of_o right_a to_o the_o child_n of_o such_o as_o be_v he_o by_o covenant_n than_o he_o have_v to_o the_o child_n of_o
undissembled_a belief_n be_v that_o i_o doubt_v not_o which_o philip_n require_v of_o the_o eunuch_n when_o he_o say_v if_o thou_o believe_v with_o all_o thy_o heart_n thou_o may_v be_v baptise_a and_o the_o eunuch_n answer_n upon_o which_o he_o be_v baptise_a by_o philip_n do_v intimate_v so_o much_o when_o he_o only_o say_v i_o believe_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o more_o than_o this_o i_o conceive_v can_v be_v due_o infer_v from_o those_o word_n of_o philip_n to_o the_o eunuch_n for_o the_o reason_n i_o have_v already_o give_v these_o be_v the_o principal_a text_n make_v use_v of_o to_o countenance_v the_o opinion_n which_o i_o have_v in_o this_o inquiry_n oppose_v there_o be_v objection_n or_o plea_n draw_v from_o some_o other_o which_o be_v well_o answer_v by_o mr._n thomas_n lamb_n as_o some_o of_o these_o i_o have_v insist_v on_o also_o be_v in_o his_o fresh_a suit_n against_o independency_n and_o thus_o upon_o our_o inquiry_n we_o have_v find_v as_o i_o conceive_v that_o other_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n in_o scripture_n account_n and_o so_o in_o god_n account_n by_o who_o inspiration_n the_o scripture_n be_v write_v than_o those_o which_o be_v of_o the_o church_n as_o invisible_a or_o they_o that_o seem_v to_o be_v so_o for_o almighty_a god_n as_o have_v be_v show_v account_v and_o ow_v such_o to_o be_v his_o people_n in_o distinction_n from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n that_o have_v enter_v into_o covenant_n with_o he_o though_o otherwise_o they_o or_o many_o of_o they_o be_v far_o from_o seem_v to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n as_o invisible_a and_o if_o god_n esteem_v of_o they_o as_o such_o then_o so_o must_v his_o servant_n likewise_o and_o if_o the_o scripture_n account_v they_o such_o it_o will_v become_v we_o to_o do_v so_o too_o who_o profess_v to_o make_v the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o rule_n of_o our_o judgement_n after_o that_o upon_o our_o inquiry_n we_o have_v find_v thing_n thus_o let_v not_o any_o man_n now_o say_v that_o by_o this_o doctrine_n we_o confound_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o devil_n with_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n for_o this_o will_v but_o reflect_v after_o a_o unseemly_a manner_n upon_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n for_o thus_o number_v bad_a man_n as_o well_o as_o good_a to_o be_v of_o his_o visible_a church_n as_o external_o relate_v to_o he_o and_z as_o worshipper_n of_o he_o secret_n hypocrite_n belong_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o devil_n as_o well_o as_o those_o that_o be_v more_o visible_o such_o and_o yet_o none_o deny_v but_o that_o many_o such_o be_v in_o the_o visible_a church_n nor_o do_v they_o count_v this_o a_o confound_a god_n kingdom_n with_o the_o devil_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o the_o devil_n have_v his_o visible_a and_o invisible_a kingdom_n as_o well_o as_o god_n have_v he_o but_o those_o hypocrite_n whether_o secret_a or_o more_o open_a which_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n though_o they_o be_v in_o a_o sense_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o devil_n yet_o must_v be_v reckon_v to_o be_v not_o of_o his_o visible_a but_o of_o his_o invisible_a kingdom_n so_o that_o the_o hypothesis_n i_o seek_v to_o establish_v do_v not_o at_o all_o tend_v to_o confound_v god_n visible_a kingdom_n and_o the_o devil_n visible_a kingdom_n one_o with_o another_o much_o less_o their_o invisible_a kingdom_n for_o those_o be_v not_o in_o scripture_n reckon_v to_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a kingdom_n of_o the_o devil_n who_o profess_o worship_v the_o true_a god_n and_o he_o only_o and_o jesus_n christ_n as_o his_o son_n and_o only_a mediator_n though_o otherwise_o bad_a but_o such_o as_o worship_v idol_n other_o god_n and_o other_o mediator_n in_o do_v of_o which_o they_o do_v in_o effect_n worship_v the_o devil_n who_o be_v the_o founder_n of_o such_o worship_n those_o kingdom_n or_o nation_n be_v in_o scripture_n count_v of_o the_o devil_n kingdom_n or_o dominion_n in_o which_o his_o worship_n and_o ordinance_n idol-worship_n and_o the_o rite_n of_o that_o worship_n be_v establish_v by_o public_a authority_n as_o the_o religion_n of_o those_o nation_n as_o on_o the_o contrary_a those_o nation_n or_o kingdom_n be_v count_v god_n kingdom_n in_o which_o the_o word_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v by_o public_a authority_n own_a and_o establish_v as_o the_o religion_n of_o those_o nation_n thus_o when_o idol_n worship_n be_v put_v down_o and_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o several_a territory_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n by_o the_o first_o christian_n emperor_n and_o the_o christian_a religion_n establish_v by_o public_a authority_n as_o the_o religion_n of_o those_o nation_n than_o the_o devil_n be_v say_v to_o be_v cast_v down_o and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o the_o power_n of_o his_o christ_n to_o be_v come_v rev._n 12.9_o 10._o and_o again_o the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n be_v say_v to_o become_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o of_o his_o christ_n when_o idol-worship_n which_o be_v devilish_a worship_n be_v reject_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o those_o kingdom_n revel_v 11.15_o not_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o hypocrite_n or_o carnal_a professor_n of_o christianity_n in_o these_o kingdom_n when_o they_o be_v thus_o become_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o of_o his_o christ_n but_o though_o there_o be_v 〈◊〉_d as_o the_o true_a christian_a doctrine_n and_o worship_n be_v own_v and_o establish_v by_o the_o government_n or_o roll_a power_n of_o those_o kingdom_n and_o so_o long_o as_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o inhabitant_n be_v for_o the_o same_o doctrine_n and_o worship_n in_o opposition_n to_o idolatrous_a and_o antichristian_a doctrine_n and_o worship_n they_o be_v account_v to_o belong_v to_o god_n visible_a kingdom_n in_o the_o world_n and_o not_o the_o devil_n however_o many_o of_o those_o inhabitant_n may_v belong_v to_o the_o invisible_a kingdom_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o thus_o those_o be_v call_v the_o child_n of_o god_n kingdom_n by_o our_o saviour_n who_o yet_o at_o last_o shall_v be_v cast_v out_o into_o outer_a darkness_n mat._n 8.12_o but_o of_o this_o more_o afterward_o query_n ix_o whither_o god_n have_v grant_v any_o right_n to_o church-priviledge_n to_o those_o who_o be_v only_o of_o the_o church_n as_o visible_a but_o not_o as_o invisible_a that_o such_o have_v right_a to_o they_o before_o man_n unless_o they_o be_v just_o deprive_v of_o they_o by_o church-censure_n those_o will_v grant_v who_o yet_o deny_v that_o they_o have_v any_o right_n to_o they_o by_o god_n allowance_n but_o our_o present_a enquiry_n be_v whether_o they_o have_v any_o right_n by_o god_n allowance_n and_o if_o that_o be_v true_a which_o we_o now_o suppose_v we_o find_v to_o be_v so_o in_o our_o former_a enquiry_n viz._n that_o god_n himself_o do_v own_o very_a many_o such_o to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n as_o visible_a which_o yet_o be_v not_o at_o all_o of_o it_o as_o invisible_a than_o it_o will_v be_v but_o reasonable_a to_o conclude_v from_o thence_o that_o he_o do_v allow_v they_o a_o share_n in_o the_o external_a and_o temporary_a privilege_n of_o that_o relation_n except_o in_o those_o case_n wherein_o he_o himself_o have_v make_v a_o exception_n for_o otherwise_o god_n by_o confer_v on_o they_o the_o privilege_n of_o relation_n to_o himself_o and_o his_o church_n have_v confer_v upon_o they_o a_o right_n to_o the_o privilege_n of_o that_o relation_n so_o far_o as_o the_o relation_n itself_o extend_v for_o the_o relation_n and_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o relation_n go_v together_o except_o in_o case_n of_o forfeiture_n by_o miscarriage_n the_o union_n of_o part_n do_v of_o itself_o infer_v right_a to_o communion_n with_o they_o in_o thing_n common_a to_o the_o whole_a the_o right_a of_o those_o in_o the_o visible_a church_n to_o visible_a church-priviledge_n do_v arise_v i_o conceive_v from_o that_o covenant_n between_o god_n and_o they_o in_o baptism_n by_o which_o they_o engage_v themselves_o to_o be_v his_o people_n as_o god_n on_o the_o other_o hand_n have_v engage_v himself_o to_o be_v their_o god_n on_o that_o condition_n now_o for_o aught_o that_o appear_v from_o the_o scripture_n to_o the_o contrary_a so_o far_o as_o they_o perform_v covenant_n with_o god_n in_o be_v a_o people_n unto_o he_o so_o far_o he_o own_v they_o to_o be_v his_o people_n and_o so_o far_o as_o he_o do_v so_o he_o allow_v they_o the_o privilege_n of_o his_o people_n which_o be_v a_o share_n in_o his_o household_n fare_n and_o in_o the_o provision_n for_o his_o family_n which_o be_v his_o word_n and_o ordinance_n if_o they_o worship_v no_o other_o god_n and_o hold_v the_o head_n christ_n jesus_n in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n and_o worship_n and_o own_o his_o doctrine_n and_o precept_n as_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o life_n and_o worship_n god_n in_o
the_o bad_a from_o among_o the_o good_a in_o the_o church_n but_o from_o among_o the_o good_a in_o the_o world_n not_o that_o they_o shall_v both_o grow_v together_o in_o the_o church_n till_o harvest_n but_o in_o the_o world_n and_o to_o strengthen_v this_o they_o allege_v our_o saviour_n interpretation_n of_o this_o parable_n where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o field_n where_o the_o tare_n and_o the_o wheat_n grow_v together_o be_v the_o world_n mat._n 13.38_o and_o this_o indeed_o at_o first_o sight_n seem_v to_o be_v a_o very_a considerable_a objection_n but_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o matter_n well_o i_o think_v it_o may_v appear_v otherwise_o the_o field_n indeed_o in_o which_o the_o seed_n be_v sow_o and_o the_o gospel_n first_o preach_v be_v the_o world_n according_a to_o our_o saviour_n commission_n to_o his_o apostle_n go_v you_o into_o all_o the_o world_n and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n mar._n 16.15_o but_o then_o those_o that_o receive_v this_o seed_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o as_o to_o make_v profession_n of_o adhere_v to_o it_o be_v present_o baptize_v and_o receive_v into_o the_o church_n now_o it_o be_v among_o these_o that_o the_o tare_n spring_v up_o many_o of_o they_o prove_v bad_a christian_n so_o that_o the_o seed_n be_v first_o sow_o in_o the_o world_n as_o in_o a_o common_a field_n but_o yet_o the_o tare_n spring_v up_o in_o that_o part_n of_o the_o world_n which_o be_v now_o become_v the_o visible_a church_n and_o a_o enclose_a garden_n and_o therefore_o when_o the_o time_n of_o the_o harvest_n shall_v come_v when_o these_o tare_n must_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o wheat_n our_o saviour_n say_v they_o shall_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n ver._n 41._o where_o they_o be_v permit_v to_o grow_v till_o this_o harvest_n and_o what_o be_v this_o kingdom_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n but_o his_o visible_a church_n the_o history_n of_o the_o event_n of_o the_o apostle_n preach_v do_v plain_o lay_v open_a the_o meaning_n of_o this_o parable_n and_o that_o of_o the_o draw-net_n and_o other_o like_a parable_n in_o that_o the_o visible_a church_n which_o they_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o world_n consist_v of_o bad_a as_o well_o as_o good_a and_o this_o parable_n in_o particular_a show_v further_a that_o these_o tare_n be_v not_o to_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o this_o very_a reason_n lest_o while_o you_o gather_v up_o the_o tare_n say_v he_o you_o root_v up_o also_o the_o wheat_n with_o they_o so_o that_o it_o seem_v that_o the_o tare_n grow_v with_o the_o wheat_n be_v in_o some_o respect_n matter_n of_o security_n to_o the_o wheat_n and_o that_o the_o wheat_n will_v be_v in_o more_o danger_n by_o the_o tare_n be_v gather_v from_o among_o it_o than_o by_o their_o grow_v together_o with_o it_o in_o more_o danger_n of_o bein_z root_v up_o or_o root_v out_o and_o this_o seem_v full_o to_o justify_v and_o make_v good_a that_o reason_n i_o be_o now_o upon_o why_o all_o unregenerate_a christian_n shall_v not_o be_v deny_v a_o place_n and_o be_v in_o the_o visible_a church_n if_o it_o shall_v be_v hear_v say_v that_o the_o church_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n when_o but_o few_o in_o number_n do_v yet_o subsist_v yea_o and_o abundant_o increase_v too_o though_o they_o have_v no_o humane_a or_o worldly_a power_n to_o defend_v they_o and_o when_o almost_o the_o whole_a world_n both_o of_o jew_n and_o gentile_n be_v against_o they_o and_o why_o may_v it_o not_o as_o well_o do_v so_o now_o though_o none_o that_o be_v not_o of_o the_o invisible_a church_n shall_v be_v any_o defence_n unto_o it_o i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o they_o may_v subsist_v in_o the_o world_n continue_v and_o increase_v as_o well_o as_o they_o do_v provide_v they_o have_v but_o the_o same_o extraordinary_a mean_n to_o back_n and_o abet_v they_o and_o to_o increase_v their_o number_n as_o those_o primitive_a christian_n have_v i_o mean_v those_o miraculous_a power_n which_o then_o procure_v the_o christian_n great_a reputation_n among_o the_o people_n and_o which_o do_v still_o attract_v and_o draw_v in_o more_o to_o their_o party_n than_o be_v diminish_v by_o the_o persecution_n which_o be_v raise_v against_o they_o by_o the_o high_a power_n which_o be_v then_o infidel_n for_o by_o reason_n of_o those_o miraculous_a wonder_n which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o other_o in_o those_o time_n the_o multitude_n of_o people_n be_v so_o astonish_v and_o affect_v that_o they_o favour_v they_o so_o far_o as_o that_o the_o ruler_n be_v put_v under_o some_o awe_n for_o we_o read_v that_o for_o the_o reason_n aforesaid_a great_a grace_n or_o favour_n be_v upon_o they_o all_o to_o wit_n all_o the_o christian_n act_n 4.33_o and_o chap._n 5.13_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o people_n magnify_v they_o so_o that_o the_o ruler_n when_o they_o have_v otherwise_o a_o mind_n to_o it_o find_v not_o how_o to_o punish_v they_o because_o of_o the_o people_n for_o all_o man_n glorify_v god_n for_o that_o which_o be_v do_v chap._n 4.21_o and_o in_o chap._n 5.26_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o captain_n and_o officer_n that_o be_v send_v to_o bring_v the_o apostle_n before_o the_o council_n that_o they_o bring_v they_o without_o violence_n because_o they_o fear_v the_o people_n lest_o they_o shall_v have_v be_v stone_v and_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o credit_n they_o obtain_v among_o the_o people_n both_o to_o themselves_o and_o their_o way_n by_o the_o numerous_a miracle_n they_o wrought_v believer_n be_v the_o more_o add_v to_o the_o lord_n multitudes_z both_o of_o man_n and_o woman_n notwithstanding_o all_o the_o opposition_n which_o be_v make_v against_o they_o by_o the_o ruler_n chap._n 5.14_o and_o that_o wonderful_a increase_n of_o believer_n which_o be_v make_v from_o among_o the_o heathen_a also_o be_v attribute_v by_o st._n paul_n unto_o those_o sign_n and_o wonder_n that_o be_v wrought_v for_o the_o proof_n and_o confirmation_n of_o the_o christian_a way_n i_o will_v not_o dare_v say_v he_o to_o speak_v of_o any_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o christ_n have_v not_o wrought_v by_o i_o to_o make_v the_o gentile_n obedient_a by_o word_n and_o deed_n through_o mighty_a sign_n and_o wonder_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n rom._n 15.18_o 19_o but_o if_o the_o small_a number_n of_o sincere_a christian_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n have_v no_o other_o mean_n to_o preserve_v themselves_o and_o to_o increase_v their_o number_n but_o the_o goodness_n of_o their_o cause_n and_o their_o own_o innocency_n and_o be_v not_o countenance_v and_o protect_v by_o christian_a state_n and_o governor_n and_o by_o a_o multitude_n more_o of_o the_o same_o profession_n with_o themselves_o than_o be_v of_o like_a sincerity_n in_o that_o profession_n they_o will_v be_v in_o great_a danger_n of_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n extirpate_v out_o of_o the_o world_n by_o the_o insidel_n and_o antichristian_a party_n in_o it_o when_o the_o papal_a defection_n befall_v the_o church_n within_o the_o roman_a empire_n the_o great_a part_n perhaps_o of_o the_o then_o visible_a church_n in_o that_o part_n of_o the_o world_n fall_v off_o from_o the_o orthodox_n and_o sincere_a and_o become_v their_o enemy_n in_o time_n the_o consequence_n of_o which_o be_v the_o exterminate_n and_o root_n out_o of_o that_o part_n of_o the_o world_n in_o a_o great_a measure_n the_o orthodox_n and_o sincere_a christian_n which_o be_v a_o great_a instance_n to_o show_v how_o it_o will_v fare_v with_o those_o of_o the_o invisible_a church_n if_o they_o be_v desert_v by_o those_o christian_n which_o be_v not_o of_o it_o or_o if_o those_o be_v reject_v as_o no_o fellow-member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o thereby_o make_v their_o enemy_n 4._o another_o reason_n be_v take_v from_o the_o danger_n in_o another_o respect_n of_o reckon_v none_o of_o the_o church_n as_o visible_a but_o upon_o the_o reputation_n of_o their_o be_v of_o the_o church_n as_o invisible_a for_o to_o admit_v man_n upon_o no_o other_o term_n into_o the_o visible_a church_n nor_o to_o its_o communion_n but_o upon_o the_o reputation_n and_o under_o the_o notion_n of_o their_o be_v already_o of_o the_o church_n as_o invisible_a tend_v great_o to_o betray_v many_o soul_n into_o a_o dangerous_a snare_n of_o self-deceiving_a for_o if_o this_o rule_n of_o admission_n shall_v be_v observe_v many_o mistake_n will_v be_v commit_v either_o through_o fallibility_n or_o partiality_n of_o judgement_n in_o they_o that_o admit_v they_o and_o so_o many_o will_v be_v receive_v into_o the_o visible_a church_n or_o to_o the_o communion_n of_o it_o as_o member_n of_o the_o invisible_a which_o yet_o be_v not_o of_o it_o and_o if_o so_o than_o all_o those_o which_o be_v thus_o receive_v under_o the_o approbation_n of_o
the_o visible_a church_n as_o member_n of_o the_o invisible_a will_v be_v thereby_o strengthen_v in_o their_o self-flattery_n and_o good_a opinion_n they_o have_v of_o themselves_o touch_n their_o good_a and_o safe_a condition_n when_o there_o be_v no_o such_o matter_n and_o when_o they_o find_v the_o good_a opinion_n they_o have_v of_o themselves_o thus_o strengthen_v by_o the_o public_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n concur_v with_o they_o therein_o they_o will_v be_v under_o the_o great_a temptation_n and_o in_o so_o much_o the_o great_a danger_n of_o rest_v secure_o in_o that_o unsafe_a condition_n to_o the_o great_a hazard_n of_o their_o soul_n we_o know_v or_o have_v abundant_a reason_n to_o suspect_v that_o many_o that_o have_v but_o a_o form_n of_o godliness_n be_v laodicean_n like_v less_o apt_a to_o suspect_v the_o goodness_n of_o their_o own_o condition_n before_o god_n than_o they_o that_o be_v true_o sincere_a how_o much_o less_o will_v they_o suspect_v it_o and_o how_o much_o more_o will_v they_o be_v confirm_v in_o the_o good_a opinion_n of_o themselves_o though_o false_a when_o they_o have_v the_o public_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n to_o back_v they_o in_o it_o and_o that_o after_o inspection_n have_v be_v make_v into_o their_o life_n and_o sign_n of_o their_o conversion_n approve_v of_o as_o the_o manner_n be_v of_o those_o that_o go_v that_o way_n of_o this_o danger_n and_o of_o this_o great_a inconvenience_n some_o of_o the_o new_a england_n divine_v grow_v sensible_a after_o they_o have_v make_v trial_n of_o that_o way_n a_o great_a while_n for_o in_o their_o answer_n to_o mr._n davenport_v apologetical_a preface_n pa._n 43_o 44._o they_o express_v themselves_o in_o these_o word_n indeed_o when_o man_n confound_v these_o two_o and_o do_v the_o visible_a church_n interest_n unto_o such_o condition_n and_o qualification_n as_o be_v repute_v enough_o to_o salvation_n this_o may_v tend_v to_o harden_v man_n and_o to_o make_v they_o conceit_n that_o if_o once_o they_o be_v but_o get_v into_o the_o church_n they_o be_v sure_a of_o heaven_n when_o as_o alas_o it_o may_v be_v they_o be_v far_o from_o it_o but_o now_o there_o be_v no_o such_o danger_n do_v arise_v from_o man_n be_v own_v visible_a church_n member_n from_o their_o profess_v to_o believe_v the_o christian_a religion_n and_o from_o their_o covenant_a to_o endeavour_v to_o live_v according_a to_o it_o such_o profession_n and_o such_o covenant_a do_v indeed_o give_v ground_n of_o hope_n to_o the_o church_n that_o such_o will_v not_o be_v so_o regardless_o of_o their_o own_o salvation_n as_o not_o to_o be_v willing_a to_o learn_v their_o duty_n and_o to_o endeavour_v to_o do_v it_o that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v but_o yet_o such_o hope_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v their_o good_a performance_n for_o the_o future_a do_v not_o minister_v any_o occasion_n of_o confidence_n in_o such_o man_n that_o they_o have_v already_o perform_v what_o be_v necessary_a to_o their_o salvation_n as_o a_o receive_v they_o into_o the_o church_n and_o unto_o communion_n as_o have_v in_o the_o public_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n already_o perform_v it_o will_v do_v this_o act_n of_o the_o church_n in_o receive_v they_o into_o communion_n in_o her_o external_a privilege_n in_o hope_n of_o their_o improve_n they_o to_o the_o save_n of_o their_o soul_n give_v they_o no_o ground_n of_o confidence_n of_o the_o safety_n and_o goodness_n of_o their_o condition_n thereby_o further_o than_o they_o be_v careful_a to_o make_v their_o call_v and_o election_n sure_a by_o use_v all_o diligence_n in_o improve_n the_o opportunity_n and_o mean_n of_o do_v so_o by_o their_o be_v in_o the_o church_n man_n be_v too_o prone_a to_o lay_v too_o great_a a_o stress_n upon_o their_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o communion_n though_o the_o church_n have_v pass_v no_o judgement_n thereby_o of_o their_o be_v of_o the_o invisible_a church_n how_o much_o more_o will_v they_o do_v so_o in_o case_n it_o have_v st._n paul_n be_v sensible_a i_o doubt_v not_o how_o prone_a many_o christian_n be_v to_o lay_v too_o much_o stress_n mere_o upon_o their_o be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o partaker_n in_o the_o external_a communion_n thereof_o for_o which_o cause_n he_o caution_v the_o christian_n against_o flatter_v themselves_o with_o a_o opinion_n of_o their_o safe_a condition_n upon_o that_o account_n and_o labour_v to_o possess_v they_o with_o a_o sense_n of_o the_o danger_n they_o be_v in_o for_o all_o that_o if_o they_o shall_v rest_v therein_o without_o grow_v better_a and_o better_a thereby_o 1_o cor._n 10._o i_o will_v not_o say_v he_o that_o you_o shall_v be_v ignorant_a brethren_n how_o that_o all_o our_o father_n be_v baptize_v unto_o moses_n in_o the_o cloud_n and_o in_o the_o sea_n and_o do_v all_o eat_v the_o same_o spiritual_a meat_n and_o drink_v the_o same_o spiritual_a drink_n and_o yet_o with_o many_o of_o they_o god_n be_v not_o well_o please_v but_o overthrow_v they_o in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o he_o tell_v they_o that_o these_o thing_n be_v our_o example_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o lust_n after_o evil_a thing_n as_o they_o lust_v then_o enumerate_v their_o miscarriage_n and_o what_o befall_v they_o thereupon_o and_o further_o tell_v they_o that_o these_o thing_n happen_v to_o they_o for_o example_n or_o type_n to_o we_o and_o be_v write_v for_o our_o admonition_n upon_o who_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v come_v thereby_o give_v they_o to_o understand_v that_o though_o they_o be_v baptize_v and_o receive_v into_o the_o church_n and_o do_v participate_v of_o the_o same_o spiritual_a meat_n and_o drink_n in_o the_o sacrament_n with_o the_o best_a in_o the_o church_n yet_o if_o they_o do_v not_o take_v warning_n by_o the_o miscarriage_n of_o those_o that_o have_v be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o it_o as_o well_o as_o they_o to_o avoid_v the_o like_a they_o may_v perish_v as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o do_v for_o all_o their_o communion_n in_o the_o church_n 5._o another_o reason_n against_o refuse_v all_o such_o communion_n in_o the_o visible_a church_n who_o be_v not_o judge_v to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n as_o invisible_a be_v take_v from_o the_o danger_n of_o such_o a_o practice_n in_o another_o respect_n and_o that_o be_v the_o danger_n of_o mistake_v the_o good_a for_o bad_a and_o of_o refuse_v the_o sincere_a christian_n under_o the_o notion_n of_o carnal_a and_o unregenerate_a there_o be_v so_o little_a visible_a difference_n between_o what_o many_o of_o the_o same_o person_n be_v a_o little_a before_o they_o have_v save_v grace_n and_o what_o they_o be_v when_o they_o have_v it_o only_o in_o the_o low_a degree_n that_o man_n will_v be_v in_o great_a danger_n of_o mistake_v if_o they_o shall_v make_v a_o judgement_n of_o their_o spiritual_a state_n under_o such_o circumstance_n and_o the_o difficulty_n of_o not_o mistake_v in_o this_o case_n will_v be_v still_o increase_v when_o that_o very_o little_a of_o true_a grace_n which_o be_v in_o some_o man_n be_v great_o obscure_v by_o the_o courseness_n of_o their_o natural_a temper_n and_o disposition_n beside_o the_o prejudice_n which_o some_o good_a man_n have_v against_o other_o upon_o account_n of_o some_o difference_n in_o opinion_n will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o discern_v true_a grace_n in_o some_o of_o they_o in_o who_o it_o be_v and_o perhaps_o in_o some_o good_a degree_n too_o this_o age_n have_v furnish_v we_o with_o too_o many_o instance_n of_o this_o nature_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o narrowness_n of_o spirit_n and_o severity_n of_o many_o by_o reason_n of_o which_o many_o of_o those_o in_o who_o god_n himself_o find_v save_v grace_n will_v be_v refuse_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n for_o want_v of_o it_o if_o that_o opinion_n shall_v general_o obtain_v that_o none_o shall_v be_v admit_v into_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v to_o its_o communion_n but_o upon_o the_o reputation_n of_o their_o be_v of_o the_o church_n as_o invisible_a some_o do_v understand_v the_o danger_n of_o root_n up_o the_o wheat_n if_o the_o tare_n shall_v be_v gather_v from_o among_o it_o to_o lie_v in_o the_o danger_n of_o mistake_v the_o wheat_n for_o the_o tare_n if_o the_o one_o shall_v be_v attempt_v to_o be_v gather_v from_o the_o other_o and_o if_o this_o shall_v be_v the_o reason_n why_o our_o saviour_n will_v have_v they_o both_o to_o grow_v together_o till_o the_o harvest_n it_o will_v be_v pat_o to_o what_o i_o have_v say_v on_o this_o reason_n but_o if_o it_o be_v not_o as_o i_o be_o apt_a to_o think_v it_o be_v not_o yet_o than_o it_o so_o much_o the_o more_o confirm_v that_o to_o be_v our_o savious_n meaning_n which_o i_o have_v suggest_v elsewhere_o for_o i_o do_v not_o
know_v any_o three_o sense_n pretend_v to_o among_o interpreter_n but_o indeed_o there_o be_v danger_n in_o both_o respect_n and_o therefore_o i_o know_v no_o inconvenience_n if_o we_o understand_v the_o parable_n in_o reference_n to_o both_o now_o it_o be_v not_o hard_a to_o conceive_v how_o bad_a a_o thing_n it_o will_v be_v if_o such_o as_o have_v true_a grace_n shall_v be_v refuse_v admittance_n into_o the_o visible_a church_n or_o to_o its_o communion_n only_o because_o it_o be_v so_o little_a that_o man_n can_v discern_v it_o to_o be_v so_o for_o such_o a_o discouragement_n may_v be_v enough_o to_o set_v they_o back_o again_o to_o quench_v the_o smoke_a flax_n and_o to_o expose_v they_o to_o the_o loss_n of_o that_o very_a little_a grace_n in_o its_o beginning_n which_o they_o have_v a_o thing_n point_fw-fr blank_a against_o that_o admonition_n and_o caution_n of_o our_o saviour_n mat._n 18.10_o take_v heed_n that_o you_o despise_v not_o one_o of_o these_o little_a one_o query_n xi_o what_o be_v it_o that_o make_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o visible_a and_o particular_a church_n and_o what_o make_v the_o difference_n between_o one_o particular_a church_n and_o another_o the_o query_n be_v double_a i_o shall_v answer_v to_o that_o first_o which_o be_v first_o and_o do_v say_v the_o universal_a church_n differ_v from_o a_o particular_a church_n in_o two_o respect_n 1._o the_o universal_a church_n differ_v from_o a_o particular_a as_o the_o whole_a differ_v from_o a_o part_n and_o a_o particular_a church_n differ_v from_o the_o universal_a as_o a_o part_n differ_v from_o the_o whole_a for_o otherwise_o they_o be_v material_o the_o same_o only_o with_o this_o difference_n the_o one_o contain_v all_o visible_a church_n matter_n and_o the_o other_o but_o a_o part_n of_o it_o there_o be_v nothing_o necessary_a to_o qualify_v the_o matter_n of_o which_o a_o particular_a church_n do_v consist_v than_o what_o make_v all_o the_o member_n of_o it_o member_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n unless_o it_o be_v what_o belong_v to_o the_o officer_n of_o it_o as_o such_o 2._o if_o by_o a_o particular_a church_n we_o understand_v one_o single_a congregation_n than_o a_o particular_a church_n differ_v from_o the_o universal_a as_o those_o of_o which_o it_o do_v consist_v do_v assemble_v together_o in_o one_o place_n for_o public_a worship_n which_o the_o universal_a church_n can_v do_v now_o though_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o its_o existence_n possible_o it_o may_v but_o if_o by_o a_o particular_a church_n we_o understand_v so_o many_o single_a worship_a congregation_n as_o be_v unite_v under_o one_o and_o the_o same_o church_n government_n and_o governor_n in_o a_o city_n province_n or_o kingdom_n then_o a_o particular_a church_n in_o this_o sense_n be_v difference_v from_o the_o church_n universal_a by_o this_o ecclesiastical_a polity_n under_o which_o it_o be_v otherwise_o unite_a than_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o such_o be_v or_o can_v be_v and_o such_o a_o particular_a church_n we_o suppose_v the_o church_n in_o jerusalem_n in_o corinth_n and_o in_o other_o great_a city_n to_o have_v be_v the_o scripture_n so_o account_v they_o when_o yet_o each_o of_o they_o consist_v of_o more_o single_a worship_a assembly_n than_o one_o as_o may_v well_o be_v presume_v on_o several_a account_n not_o here_o to_o be_v mention_v there_o be_v another_o thing_n which_o the_o congregationalist_n make_v essential_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o particular_a church_n for_o they_o make_v it_o the_o form_n or_o formal_a cause_n of_o it_o which_o will_v be_v another_o difference_n between_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o a_o particular_a if_o their_o opinion_n and_o assertion_n be_v admit_v concern_v it_o and_o that_o be_v that_o church_n covenant_n or_o mutual_a engagement_n to_o walk_v together_o in_o the_o way_n and_o order_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o by_o this_o each_o one_o of_o their_o single_a congregation_n distinguish_v itself_o from_o all_o other_o and_o they_o account_v this_o so_o necessary_a as_o to_o make_v it_o a_o condition_n of_o communion_n without_o which_o they_o will_v not_o admit_v person_n otherwise_o well_o approve_v of_o by_o themselves_o to_o sacramental_a communion_n that_o be_v unless_o they_o be_v under_o this_o engagement_n to_o they_o or_o some_o other_o sister_n church_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n but_o this_o be_v so_o much_o the_o worse_o because_o it_o be_v do_v and_o require_v under_o the_o notion_n of_o divine_a appointment_n when_o god_n have_v appoint_v no_o such_o thing_n which_o be_v such_o a_o piece_n of_o superstition_n as_o the_o enjoin_v the_o use_n of_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v free_a from_o so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v not_o enjoin_v as_o thing_n of_o divine_a appointment_n but_o only_o as_o of_o a_o indifferent_a nature_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o such_o reason_n to_o scruple_n they_o as_o there_o be_v to_o scruple_n this_o practice_n upon_o those_o term_n there_o be_v two_o text_n of_o scripture_n upon_o which_o more_o especial_o and_o principal_o they_o ground_n this_o opinion_n and_o practice_n of_o they_o which_o i_o shall_v a_o little_a inquire_v into_o the_o one_o be_v 2_o cor._n 8.5_o which_o dr._n o._n to_o this_o end_n quote_v more_o than_o once_o in_o his_o late_a book_n the_o word_n be_v these_o and_o this_o they_o do_v not_o as_o we_o hope_v but_o first_o give_v their_o own_o self_n to_o the_o lord_n and_o unto_o we_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n the_o we_o here_o in_o the_o text_n be_v st._n paul_n and_o timotheus_n from_o who_o this_o epistle_n come_v chap._n 1.1_o and_o if_o so_o how_o can_v the_o church_n of_o macedonia_n give_v themselves_o to_o st._n paul_n and_o timothy_n possible_o signify_v their_o mutual_a covenant_v one_o with_o another_o among_o themselves_o and_o be_v it_o not_o as_o strange_a also_o that_o they_o shall_v give_v themselves_o to_o paul_n and_o timothy_n in_o order_n to_o the_o constitute_v themselves_o church_n when_o as_o that_o give_v themselves_o to_o paul_n and_o timothy_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v do_v then_o when_o they_o be_v already_o church_n as_o the_o whole_a context_n from_o ver_fw-la 1._o do_v show_v and_o if_o their_o give_a themselves_o to_o paul_n and_o timothy_n be_v one_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o do_v more_o than_o paul_n and_o timothy_n hope_v for_o than_o such_o a_o confederation_n be_v not_o likely_a to_o be_v mean_v by_o it_o as_o be_v essential_o necessary_a to_o their_o existence_n as_o church_n this_o certain_o will_v not_o have_v be_v more_o than_o they_o hope_v for_o if_o it_o have_v be_v their_o duty_n and_o of_o so_o great_a a_o necessity_n this_o be_v enough_o to_o show_v how_o impertinent_o this_o scripture_n be_v allege_v but_o the_o whole_a context_n show_v that_o the_o thing_n st._n paul_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v quite_o of_o another_o nature_n and_o that_o be_v the_o liberality_n of_o the_o church_n of_o macedonia_n towards_o the_o relief_n of_o the_o christian_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o their_o zeal_n in_o be_v otherwise_o serviceable_a to_o so_o good_a a_o work_n wherein_o they_o do_v indeed_o exceed_v the_o expectation_n of_o paul_n and_o timothy_n for_o their_o poverty_n to_o which_o they_o be_v bring_v by_o suster_v for_o the_o gospel_n be_v so_o deep_a that_o st._n paul_n it_o seem_v scarce_o think_v it_o fit_a to_o receive_v any_o thing_n of_o they_o and_o it_o be_v upon_o their_o earnest_a entreaty_n that_o he_o do_v and_o yet_o they_o do_v not_o only_o thus_o give_v above_o their_o ability_n but_o beside_o their_o give_v up_o themselves_o to_o god_n as_o ready_a to_o suffer_v further_o for_o he_o if_o call_v to_o it_o they_o give_v up_o themselves_o to_o st._n paul_n &_o timothy_n also_o to_o assist_v they_o in_o that_o charitable_a work_n they_o have_v in_o hand_n by_o their_o further_a endeavour_n to_o promote_v it_o among_o other_o for_o they_o entreat_v paul_n and_o timothy_n earnest_o to_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o fellowship_n of_o minister_a to_o the_o saint_n the_o manage_n of_o that_o affair_n and_o procure_v they_o to_o send_v titus_n to_o corinth_n to_o promote_v the_o same_o business_n as_o appear_v by_o ver_fw-la 6._o this_o scripture_n though_o so_o great_a a_o stranger_n to_o this_o opinion_n as_o you_o see_v yet_o be_v that_o which_o so_o far_o as_o ever_o i_o can_v perceive_v be_v chief_o depend_v upon_o in_o this_o cause_n they_o bring_v in_o also_o as_o favour_v their_o notion_n and_o practice_n the_o say_n of_o st._n peter_n to_o the_o christian_n you_o also_o as_o lively_a stone_n be_v build_v up_o a_o spiritual_a house_n a_o holy_a priesthood_n etc._n etc._n 1_o pet._n 2.5_o and_o they_o do_v it_o seem_v suppose_v that_o these_o live_a stone_n be_v so_o lay_v together_o as_o to_o to_o make_v a_o spiritual_a
house_n be_v do_v by_o their_o confederation_n and_o covenant_n as_o the_o cement_n by_o which_o the_o christian_n be_v unite_v and_o combine_v in_o one_o particular_a church_n fit_o frame_v together_o as_o the_o phrase_n be_v ephes_n 2._o but_o st._n peter_n be_v not_o here_o speak_v to_o any_o one_o particular_a church_n as_o such_o when_o he_o say_v you_o be_v build_v up_o a_o spiritual_a house_n but_o to_o the_o stranger_n scatter_v abroad_o throughout_o pontus_n galatia_n cappadocia_n asia_n and_o bethynia_n as_o appear_v chap._n 1.1_o and_o no_o one_o sure_o can_v think_v that_o these_o christian_n thus_o scatter_v and_o at_o this_o distance_n can_v become_v one_o particular_a church_n by_o such_o a_o mutual_a confederation_n as_o these_o hold_v necessary_a for_o the_o form_v a_o particular_a church_n and_o if_o not_o it_o must_v be_v by_o virtue_n of_o somewhat_o else_o than_o such_o a_o particular_a church_n covenant_n as_o these_o dissent_v brethren_n think_v to_o find_v here_o by_o which_o christian_n in_o so_o many_o distant_a part_n of_o the_o world_n as_o aforesaid_a be_v build_v up_o one_o spiritual_a house_n and_o that_o doubtless_o must_v be_v the_o same_o thing_n by_o which_o all_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n become_v one_o spiritual_a house_n of_o god_n for_o so_o they_o be_v for_o when_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o be_v high_a priest_n over_o the_o house_n of_o god_n heb._n 10.21_o and_o to_o be_v faithful_a as_o a_o sen_n over_o his_o own_o house_n heb._n 3.6_o house_n in_o these_o place_n can_v signify_v less_o than_o the_o universal_a christian_a church_n who_o be_v call_v the_o household_n of_o faith_n and_o how_o do_v all_o these_o christian_n become_v the_o house_n of_o god_n but_o by_o be_v join_v and_o devote_v to_o he_o by_o the_o baptismal_a covenant_n and_o thereby_o to_o one_o another_o among_o who_o he_o dwell_v and_o be_v worship_v as_o in_o his_o holy_a temple_n for_o by_o this_o they_o all_o become_v one_o body_n which_o be_v but_o another_o metaphor_n under_o which_o to_o express_v the_o same_o thing_n ephes_n 2.21_o 22._o 1_o cor._n 12.13_o it_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n which_o make_v person_n member_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a that_o qualify_v they_o for_o particular_a church_n membership_n and_o that_o be_v the_o baptismal_a covenant_n and_o to_o make_v any_o other_o covenant_n beside_o this_o so_o necessary_a to_o qualify_v man_n for_o particular_a church_n membership_n and_o communion_n as_o to_o make_v this_o of_o god_n own_o appointment_n insufficient_a for_o that_o end_n be_v a_o great_a impeachment_n of_o it_o and_o contain_v in_o it_o such_o consequence_n as_o the_o abetter_n of_o it_o will_v be_v ashamed_a to_o countenance_v if_o they_o be_v aware_a of_o it_o for_o so_o long_o as_o it_o be_v assert_v to_o be_v of_o divine_a appointment_n the_o formal_a cause_n of_o a_o particular_a church_n and_o essential_a to_o its_o be_v and_o be_v make_v the_o condition_n of_o communion_n when_o god_n have_v no_o where_o appoint_v or_o require_v it_o so_o long_v it_o may_v be_v charge_v with_o these_o evil_n 1._o with_o a_o teach_n for_o doctrine_n the_o commandment_n of_o man_n a_o piece_n of_o vain_a worship_n condemn_v by_o our_o saviour_n mat._n 15.9_o which_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o add_v to_o god_n word_n or_o a_o say_n he_o say_v when_o he_o have_v not_o say_v it_o 2._o it_o be_v in_o some_o sort_n and_o in_o part_n a_o make_v void_a the_o command_n or_o institution_n of_o god_n that_o man_n may_v establish_v their_o own_o tradition_n for_o whereas_o the_o baptismal_a covenant_n qualify_v man_n for_o particular_a church_n membership_n by_o bring_v they_o into_o the_o universal_a church_n this_o opinion_n deny_v the_o baptismal_a covenant_n to_o be_v sufficient_a to_o this_o end_n and_o set_v up_o this_o other_o confederate_v in_o its_o room_n 3._o it_o contain_v in_o it_o the_o unchurch_a of_o all_o those_o gospel_n church_n that_o be_v or_o ever_o have_v be_v in_o the_o world_n that_o have_v not_o be_v thus_o unite_v by_o church_n covenant_v for_o to_o say_v this_o be_v the_o form_n of_o a_o particular_a church_n or_o the_o formal_a cause_n of_o it_o be_v in_o effect_n to_o say_v that_o none_o be_v real_o church_n without_o it_o for_o matter_n and_o form_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o be_v of_o church_n as_o well_o as_o they_o be_v of_o other_o thing_n now_o to_o unchurch_n all_o church_n that_o have_v not_o be_v thus_o confederate_a be_v a_o great_a thing_n indeed_o if_o we_o consider_v how_o few_o year_n it_o be_v since_o such_o covenant_n be_v hear_v of_o in_o any_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n and_o by_o how_o inconsiderable_a a_o number_n of_o congregation_n it_o have_v be_v use_v since_o it_o have_v be_v hear_v of_o these_o thing_n consider_v it_o be_v matter_n of_o a_o very_a venturous_a and_o dare_a nature_n as_o for_o the_o other_o part_n of_o our_o enquiry_n touch_v that_o which_o make_v the_o difference_n between_o one_o particular_a church_n and_o another_o we_o may_v conceive_v of_o it_o thus_o 1._o it_o consist_v partly_o in_o that_o which_o do_v distinguish_v one_o town_n from_o another_o or_o one_o great_a neighbourhood_n from_o another_o and_o that_o be_v the_o bound_n of_o habitation_n and_o this_o distinction_n be_v as_o well_o convenient_a yea_o necessary_a for_o ecclesiastical_a order_n and_o peaceable_a government_n as_o it_o be_v for_o civil_a and_o do_v as_o well_o accommodate_v the_o end_n of_o the_o one_o as_o of_o the_o other_o and_o without_o this_o a_o peaceable_a and_o orderly_a government_n in_o the_o whole_a church_n will_v be_v impracticable_a even_o as_o it_o will_v be_v in_o a_o universal_a empire_n and_o thus_o the_o church_n plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v difference_v and_o distinguish_v one_o from_o another_o that_o at_o rome_n from_o that_o at_o corinth_n and_o that_o at_o ephesus_n from_o that_o at_o philippi_n yea_o that_o at_o cenchrea_fw-mi from_o that_o at_o corinth_n which_o yet_o border_v upon_o corinth_n and_o so_o of_o the_o rest_n and_o indeed_o that_o difference_n which_o be_v make_v between_o church_n and_o church_n by_o vicinity_n of_o neighbourhood_n and_o cohabitation_n do_v best_a answer_v the_o end_n of_o particular_a church_n association_n such_o as_o be_v assemble_v together_o for_o public_a worship_n and_o mutual_a assistance_n in_o all_o christian_a office_n of_o brotherly_a love_n and_o friendship_n but_o this_o alone_a do_v not_o constitute_v christian_n dwell_v together_o in_o the_o same_o place_n a_o particular_a christian_a church_n though_o by_o their_o be_v of_o the_o church_n universal_a they_o be_v as_o fit_a matter_n qualify_v for_o it_o but_o 2._o that_o which_o do_v constitute_v such_o to_o be_v a_o particular_a church_n as_o that_o signify_v a_o company_n of_o christian_n in_o local_a communion_n in_o divine_a worship_n consist_v in_o the_o participation_n of_o gospel_n ordinance_n be_v the_o place_n over_o they_o one_o or_o more_o church-officer_n to_o minister_v to_o they_o therein_o by_o which_o officer_n as_o well_o as_o by_o the_o place_n where_o they_o dwell_v and_o where_o they_o assemble_v for_o worship_n they_o be_v distinguish_v from_o other_o like_a church_n under_o the_o conduct_n of_o other_o church-officer_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n for_o by_o such_o their_o joint_a local_a communion_n in_o the_o worship_n administer_v by_o their_o spiritual_a guide_n or_o pastor_n they_o be_v unite_v with_o he_o and_o among_o themselves_o as_o one_o worship_v congregation_n by_o which_o union_n also_o they_o be_v distinguish_v from_o other_o particular_a church_n as_o other_o particular_a church_n in_o like_a manner_n be_v from_o they_o those_o of_o the_o independent_a churchway_n do_v indeed_o hold_v particular_a church_n as_o such_o to_o be_v antecedent_n to_o any_o church-officer_n over_o they_o which_o be_v the_o reason_n which_o dr._n owen_n in_o his_o inquiry_n concern_v church_n do_v allege_v to_o prove_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n and_o to_o prove_v particular_a church_n to_o be_v antecedent_n to_o church_n officer_n he_o quote_v act_n 14.23_o where_o it_o be_v say_v of_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n and_o when_o they_o have_v ordain_v they_o elder_n in_o every_o church_n etc._n etc._n as_o for_o this_o proof_n of_o his_o assertion_n i_o shall_v consider_v it_o by_o and_o by_o but_o shall_v first_o examine_v and_o try_v what_o be_v in_o the_o assertion_n itself_o which_o i_o be_o incline_v to_o think_v will_v be_v find_v full_a of_o mistake_n and_o that_o the_o contrary_n will_v be_v find_v true_a viz._n that_o the_o evangelical_n ministry_n be_v and_o always_o have_v be_v antecedent_n to_o the_o existence_n of_o christian_a church_n and_o indeed_o a_o instrumental_a cause_n of_o their_o be_v and_o this_o be_v true_a not_o only_o of_o particular_a church_n but_o also_o
of_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o christian_a which_o yet_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n be_v antecedent_n to_o particular_a church_n the_o gather_n of_o christ_n a_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n at_o first_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o apostolical_a ministry_n and_o the_o ministry_n of_o their_o assistant_n the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n christ_n be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n eph._n 2.20_o and_o the_o foundation_n be_v antecedent_n to_o the_o superstructure_n all_o the_o addition_n that_o have_v be_v since_o make_v to_o the_o visible_a church_n have_v be_v by_o the_o ministerial_a office_n by_o let_v all_o the_o particular_a member_n of_o that_o addition_n into_o it_o by_o baptism_n and_o when_o man_n be_v ordain_v minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o be_v not_o ordain_v minister_n of_o this_o or_o that_o particular_a church_n but_o minister_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o church_n in_o general_n let_v no_o man_n glory_n in_o man_n for_o all_o thing_n be_v you_o whether_o paul_n or_o apollo_n or_o cephas_n all_o be_v you_o and_o you_o be_v christ_n 1_o cor._n 3.21_o 22._o paul_n apollo_n and_o cephas_n be_v they_o in_o common_a with_o other_o not_o they_o appropriate_o and_o their_o be_v send_v or_o call_v to_o be_v minister_n to_o this_o ot_fw-mi that_o particular_a church_n be_v but_o the_o application_n of_o their_o general_a capacity_n to_o particular_a use_n and_o exercise_n to_o wit_n that_o of_o ministration_n to_o such_o a_o people_n in_o particular_a and_o this_o ministerial_a power_n they_o bring_v with_o they_o to_o the_o church_n or_o people_n among_o who_o they_o be_v place_v but_o do_v not_o receive_v it_o from_o they_o and_o it_o be_v by_o virtue_n of_o their_o ministry_n and_o ministration_n that_o a_o particular_a body_n of_o people_n can_v act_v or_o perform_v any_o public_a act_n of_o communion_n peculiar_a to_o a_o church_n as_o such_o and_o therefore_o as_o they_o can_v act_v as_o a_o church_n without_o such_o a_o ministry_n so_o neither_o can_v they_o proper_o be_v a_o church_n without_o it_o the_o first_o thing_n st._n paul_n mention_n ephes_n 4.11.12_o for_o which_o our_o saviour_n christ_n give_v apostle_n prophet_n evangelist_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n be_v for_o the_o perfect_a of_o the_o saint_n or_o for_o the_o join_v they_o together_o or_o for_o the_o make_v they_o up_o or_o for_o the_o compact_n or_o knit_v they_o together_o for_o thus_o various_o be_v that_o word_n render_v by_o expositor_n but_o all_o to_o the_o same_o sense_n for_o it_o be_v for_o the_o knit_v they_o and_o hold_v they_o together_o as_o one_o body_n in_o their_o several_a public_a assembly_n for_o worship_n and_o edification_n and_o indeed_o a_o church_n be_v so_o call_v from_o several_a christian_n assemble_v together_o for_o public_a worship_n their_o union_n wherein_o be_v make_v by_o their_o joint_a concurrence_n with_o their_o spiritual_a pastor_n in_o his_o ministration_n for_o which_o end_n and_o purpose_n such_o officer_n be_v give_v and_o appoint_v by_o christ_n as_o the_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n now_o allege_v show_v and_o now_o as_o for_o the_o text_n allege_v by_o the_o doctor_n in_o which_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n be_v say_v to_o have_v ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o church_n act_v 14.23_o this_o do_v not_o prove_v the_o church_n there_o speak_v of_o to_o be_v such_o antecedent_o to_o any_o ministerial_a act_n or_o power_n by_o which_o they_o become_v such_o for_o they_o have_v be_v make_v church_n in_o some_o sort_n by_o the_o plant_n of_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n who_o also_o as_o church_n officer_n minister_v to_o they_o while_o they_o be_v among_o they_o for_o this_o ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o church_n by_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n be_v do_v in_o their_o return_n to_o the_o place_n where_o they_o have_v preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o make_v disciple_n before_o and_o they_o return_v to_o they_o to_o confirm_v they_o and_o to_o ordain_v elder_n among_o they_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o two_o precedent_a verse_n compare_v with_o the_o text_n itself_o beside_o st._n luke_n do_v not_o write_v this_o history_n till_o after_o the_o apostle_n have_v thus_o ordain_v elder_n in_o the_o church_n mention_v by_o he_o so_o that_o they_o be_v indeed_o church_n then_o when_o he_o write_v those_o word_n and_o it_o be_v proper_a for_o he_o to_o style_v they_o so_o though_o it_o shall_v be_v suppose_v they_o have_v be_v none_o before_o they_o have_v elder_n ordain_v in_o they_o so_o that_o this_o text_n can_v be_v no_o proof_n of_o that_o for_o which_o the_o doctor_n do_v allege_v it_o query_n xii_o whither_o from_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o extent_n and_o latitude_n of_o visible_a church-membership_n and_o communion_n which_o have_v be_v discourse_v of_o the_o great_a usefulness_n of_o a_o national_a settlement_n or_o constitution_n for_o the_o public_a exercise_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n in_o all_o part_n of_o a_o nation_n profess_v christianity_n may_v not_o fair_o be_v infer_v and_o conclude_v now_o the_o reason_n why_o visible_a church-membership_n &_o communion_n be_v better_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o due_a extensiveness_n than_o they_o will_v be_v if_o the_o term_n and_o condition_n of_o enjoy_v those_o privilege_n be_v limit_v and_o restrain_v to_o the_o same_o term_n which_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o invisible_a church_n membership_n and_o communion_n be_v be_v this_o viz._n because_o these_o privilege_n under_o such_o a_o extent_n and_o latitude_n tend_v more_o to_o the_o propagation_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o the_o increase_n of_o the_o number_n of_o those_o who_o shall_v be_v save_v than_o they_o will_v or_o can_v do_v if_o they_o be_v limit_v and_o restrain_v to_o the_o same_o term_n and_o condition_n of_o enjoyment_n as_o invisible_a church_n membership_n and_o communion_n be_v this_o have_v be_v show_v in_o our_o ten_o inquiry_n and_o it_o be_v for_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o it_o be_v better_a that_o the_o exercise_n of_o god_n public_a worship_n shall_v be_v set_v up_o in_o all_o part_n of_o a_o nation_n profess_v christianity_n by_o a_o national_a authority_n and_o that_o all_o such_o professor_n shall_v be_v thereby_o oblige_v to_o frequent_v it_o than_o it_o be_v to_o leave_v all_o such_o to_o their_o own_o liberty_n to_o promote_v and_o frequent_v it_o or_o to_o forbear_v and_o neglect_v to_o do_v so_o as_o the_o way_n call_v independency_n do_v for_o the_o national_a way_n tend_v more_o to_o propagate_v and_o promote_v the_o knowledge_n and_o practice_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n than_o the_o congregational_a way_n do_v and_o therefore_o must_v needs_o be_v abundant_o better_a that_o it_o do_v so_o be_v too_o apparent_a to_o be_v deny_v by_o any_o that_o have_v but_o common_a reason_n when_o these_o thing_n follow_v be_v but_o due_o consider_v 1._o better_a provision_n be_v make_v by_o a_o public_a establishment_n for_o the_o instruction_n of_o such_o a_o nation_n in_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n than_o can_v reasonable_o be_v expect_v without_o it_o unless_o provision_n be_v make_v by_o public_a authority_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o a_o gospel_n ministry_n in_o all_o part_n of_o a_o nation_n there_o will_v certain_o be_v a_o great_a want_n of_o a_o public_a ministry_n in_o many_o place_n of_o it_o than_o by_o reason_n of_o such_o a_o public_a provision_n there_o be_v will_v people_n think_v we_o of_o themselves_o in_o all_o place_n of_o a_o nation_n provide_v a_o better_a maintenance_n for_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n among_o they_o if_o leave_v whole_o to_o themselves_o than_o there_o be_v make_v by_o public_a authority_n if_o they_o will_v how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o those_o place_n be_v general_o worst_a supply_v with_o minister_n where_o the_o public_a have_v make_v least_o provision_n for_o their_o maintenance_n and_o general_o where_o there_o be_v the_o great_a failure_n in_o this_o there_o be_v the_o least_o face_n of_o religion_n and_o great_a hazard_n of_o man_n soul_n where_o there_o be_v no_o vision_n the_o people_n perish_v say_v solomon_n prov._n 29.18_o and_o the_o people_n be_v destroy_v for_o lack_n of_o knowledge_n say_v the_o prophet_n hos_n 4.6_o 2._o if_o the_o people_n shall_v be_v all_o leave_v to_o themselves_o to_o choose_v what_o minister_n they_o please_v without_o any_o public_a approbation_n and_o allowance_n of_o some_o appoint_v by_o public_a authority_n to_o judge_n of_o their_o fitness_n many_o will_v be_v in_o danger_n of_o choose_v man_n of_o erroneous_a principle_n and_o such_o as_o will_v corrupt_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n the_o consequence_n of_o which_o will_v be_v great_a opposition_n and_o contention_n between_o the_o orthodox_n and_o the_o erroneous_a and_o make_v of_o party_n and_o endless_a strife_n to_o the_o destruction_n
good_a opinion_n of_o they_o and_o of_o the_o innocency_n and_o goodness_n of_o their_o intention_n in_o what_o they_o desire_v and_o seek_v whereas_o the_o other_o tend_v to_o exasperate_v and_o provoke_v and_o to_o beget_v a_o ill_a opinion_n of_o they_o and_o a_o jealousy_n of_o their_o design_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o those_o from_o who_o they_o expect_v ease_n and_o relief_n in_o what_o be_v mattet_n of_o grievance_n to_o they_o and_o that_o which_o do_v that_o be_v no_o good_a way_n of_o obtain_v from_o they_o solomon_n wise_a advice_n be_v if_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o ruler_n rise_v up_o against_o thou_o leave_v not_o thy_o place_n for_o yield_v pacifi_v great_a offence_n eccles_n 10.4_o query_n xiii_o wherein_o may_v catholic_n church_n communion_n consist_v and_o how_o and_o by_o what_o mean_n be_v it_o best_o preserve_v to_o clear_v our_o way_n in_o this_o inquiry_n it_o will_v be_v convenient_a to_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o difference_n that_o be_v between_o the_o union_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o it_o the_o union_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n consist_v in_o the_o same_o relation_n which_o all_o the_o member_n of_o that_o one_o body_n bear_v to_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o it_o and_o to_o one_o another_o as_o fellow-member_n but_o the_o communion_n of_o this_o spiritual_a corporation_n consist_v in_o a_o mutual_a performance_n of_o those_o christian_a duty_n and_o office_n to_o which_o they_o be_v engage_v by_o virtue_n of_o that_o relation_n by_o that_o relation_n in_o which_o their_o union_n consist_v they_o come_v to_o have_v a_o great_a interest_n in_o one_o another_o than_o they_o have_v before_o their_o incorporation_n into_o that_o body_n and_o by_o it_o they_o come_v under_o new_a duty_n to_o one_o another_o to_o which_o they_o be_v not_o oblige_v before_o but_o their_o communion_n consist_v much_o in_o a_o mutual_a discharge_n of_o those_o duty_n towards_o one_o another_o and_o in_o a_o improvement_n of_o that_o interest_n for_o the_o benefit_n of_o one_o another_o and_o the_o good_a of_o the_o whole_a by_o their_o mutual_a intercourse_n in_o spiritual_a affair_n the_o union_n of_o the_o whole_a which_o be_v make_v by_o one_o baptism_n or_o the_o baptismal_a covenant_n respect_v the_o be_v of_o the_o church_n but_o catholic_n communion_n respect_v its_o well-being_n by_o its_o increase_n in_o wisdom_n goodness_n and_o comfort_n there_o be_v indeed_o a_o catholic_n church_n unity_n by_o communion_n as_o well_o as_o there_o be_v another_o which_o come_v by_o relation_n but_o this_o unity_n of_o communion_n slow_v from_o that_o which_o be_v make_v by_o a_o relation_n common_a to_o the_o whole_a have_v thus_o brief_o consider_v how_o catholic_n communion_n differ_v from_o catholic_n union_n i_o shall_v now_o proceed_v to_o show_v a_o little_a more_o particular_o wherein_n or_o in_o what_o catholic_n commumunion_n do_v consist_v and_o we_o may_v best_o know_v what_o it_o be_v and_o wherein_o it_o do_v consist_v by_o the_o account_n we_o have_v of_o it_o as_o practise_v in_o the_o catholic_n church_n when_o it_o first_o become_v christian_n and_o this_o account_n we_o have_v in_o these_o word_n act_n 2.42_o and_o they_o continue_v steadfast_o in_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o fellowship_n and_o in_o break_v of_o bread_n and_o in_o prayer_n by_o which_o description_n we_o see_v it_o consist_v in_o their_o consent_n and_o agreement_n in_o three_o thing_n faith_n worship_n fellowship_n 1._o in_o their_o agree_v in_o the_o same_o faith_n they_o continue_v steadfast_o in_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n that_o be_v in_o the_o belief_n of_o it_o in_o attendance_n to_o it_o and_o practice_n of_o it_o from_o the_o same_o faith_n be_v common_a to_o all_o christian_n it_o be_v call_v the_o common_a faith_n tit._n 1.4_o the_o one_o faith_n eph._n 4.5_o and_o their_o agreement_n in_o it_o be_v style_v unity_n in_o the_o faith_n eph._n 4.13_o 2._o in_o their_o agreement_n in_o the_o same_o worship_n break_v of_o bread_n and_o prayer_n this_o catholic_n church_n in_o its_o beginning_n be_v say_v to_o have_v continue_v with_o one_o accord_n in_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n act_v 1.14_o and_o on_o the_o day_n of_o penticost_n they_o be_v all_o with_o one_o accord_n in_o one_o place_n when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v pour_v out_o upon_o they_o and_o when_o their_o number_n so_o increase_v that_o they_o can_v not_o all_o perform_v this_o public_a worship_n together_o in_o one_o place_n but_o in_o several_a distinct_a assembly_n call_v particular_a church_n yet_o their_o agreement_n in_o the_o same_o worship_n make_v their_o communion_n in_o it_o but_o one_o communion_n though_o perform_v in_o several_a assembly_n for_o although_o these_o assembly_n be_v never_o so_o far_o distant_a from_o one_o another_o yet_o so_o long_o as_o they_o all_o agree_v in_o the_o same_o worship_n the_o distance_n of_o place_n can_v no_o more_o hinder_v their_o communion_n from_o be_v one_o than_o their_o be_v baptize_v in_o several_a distant_a place_n can_v hinder_v the_o relation_n to_o one_o another_o contract_v thereby_o from_o be_v one_o when_o it_o be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o member_n we_o account_v all_o those_o to_o be_v of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o in_o the_o same_o act_n in_o which_o they_o hold_v their_o local_a commumunion_n in_o several_a distant_a nation_n so_o long_o as_o they_o all_o agree_v in_o the_o same_o corrupt_a worship_n and_o there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n for_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o communion_n in_o worship_n of_o all_o orthodox_n assembly_n in_o all_o nation_n so_o that_o i_o take_v this_o for_o a_o unquestionable_a truth_n that_o it_o be_v man_n agreement_n in_o the_o same_o principle_n of_o communion_n be_v they_o good_a or_o bad_a that_o make_v their_o communion_n but_o one_o though_o the_o particular_a act_n of_o it_o be_v perform_v by_o they_o in_o many_o thousand_o distant_a place_n and_o now_o it_o be_v by_o the_o union_n of_o relation_n by_o the_o baptismal_a covenant_n and_o the_o unity_n of_o communion_n by_o agreement_n in_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o worship_n wherein_o they_o have_v communion_n that_o all_o orthodox_n christian_n make_v one_o great_a house_n or_o temple_n of_o god_n in_o the_o world_n in_o which_o he_o be_v open_o worship_v and_o public_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v what_o he_o be_v the_o one_o only_o true_a god_n father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n in_o opposition_n to_o all_o false_a god_n ephes_n 2.21_o in_o who_o all_o the_o build_n fit_o frame_v together_o grow_v unto_o a_o holy_a temple_n in_o the_o lord_n this_o be_v that_o house_n which_o be_v call_v christ_n own_a house_n heb._n 3.6_o and_o that_o house_n of_o god_n over_o which_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o be_v high_a priest_n heb._n 10.21_o and_o particular_a church_n in_o reference_n to_o this_o one_o house_n be_v but_o as_o several_a apartment_n in_o it_o which_o all_o together_o make_v up_o one_o great_a house_n of_o god_n and_o in_o this_o house_n of_o his_o god_n dwell_v and_o therein_o manife_v himself_o to_o his_o people_n after_o a_o more_o special_a manner_n than_o he_o do_v to_o the_o world_n 2_o cor._n 6.16_o you_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o live_a god_n as_o god_n have_v say_v i_o will_v dwell_v in_o they_o and_o walk_v in_o they_o and_o will_v be_v their_o god_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n here_o almighty_a god_n meet_v with_o they_o and_o commune_v with_o they_o and_o receive_v their_o address_n and_o here_o he_o entertain_v they_o with_o the_o fatness_n of_o his_o house_n the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o benign_a influence_n and_o comfortable_a presence_n of_o his_o spirit_n in_o the_o use_n of_o they_o in_o this_o way_n the_o whole_a church_n in_o their_o several_a assembly_n have_v communion_n with_o their_o head_n christ_n jesus_n and_o one_o with_o another_o by_o partake_v in_o common_a of_o the_o spiritual_a benefit_n communicate_v by_o the_o lord_n and_o in_o assist_v in_o common_a in_o the_o worship_n adoration_n and_o thanksgiving_n which_o the_o church_n render_v he_o for_o the_o glory_n and_o transcendent_a perfection_n of_o his_o nature_n and_o be_v and_o return_v he_o for_o all_o the_o blessing_n and_o benefit_n they_o receive_v from_o he_o and_o the_o more_o all_o christian_n be_v agree_v in_o their_o worship_v of_o god_n and_o in_o their_o communion_n with_o he_o the_o more_o they_o honour_v he_o and_o the_o more_o they_o please_v he_o and_o make_v themselves_o the_o more_o capable_a of_o receive_v all_o good_a thing_n from_o he_o in_o the_o great_a abundance_n if_o the_o agreement_n but_o of_o two_o of_o they_o touch_v any_o thing_n they_o shall_v ask_v have_v his_o promise_n of_o grant_v it_o mat._n 18.19_o what_o may_v not_o be_v expect_v from_o he_o
if_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v of_o one_o heart_n and_o one_o soul_n as_o they_o be_v at_o the_o first_o in_o matter_n of_o their_o communion_n 3._o catholic_n communion_n consist_v also_o in_o the_o mutual_a assistance_n which_o christian_n give_v to_o and_o receive_v one_o from_o another_o couch_v in_o that_o one_o word_n fellowship_n in_o the_o description_n of_o catholic_n communion_n act_v 2.42_o and_o they_o continue_v steadfast_o in_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o fellowship_n etc._n etc._n the_o same_o word_n which_o in_o our_o version_n be_v here_o translate_a fellowship_n be_v by_o the_o dutch_a in_o their_o version_n translate_v communion_n and_o according_a to_o dr._n hammond_n it_o signify_v both_o to_o communicate_v and_o to_o participate_v to_o distribute_v and_o to_o receive_v so_o that_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o christian_a communion_n every_o member_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v or_o aught_o to_o be_v useful_a and_o serviceable_a to_o the_o whole_a community_n of_o christian_n in_o general_a and_o to_o every_o christian_a in_o particular_a so_o far_o as_o they_o can_v in_o the_o place_n and_o rank_n in_o which_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n have_v set_v they_o the_o which_o if_o due_o observe_v by_o all_o as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o same_o person_n that_o thus_o communicate_v and_o contribute_v assistance_n to_o other_o will_v be_v receive_v back_o again_o from_o the_o whole_a and_o from_o every_o member_n in_o particular_a the_o like_a succour_n service_n and_o assistance_n as_o opportunity_n serve_v as_o they_o themselves_o have_v contribute_v to_o they_o as_o a_o christian_n be_v to_o serve_v every_o fellow-christian_a so_o according_a to_o the_o same_o law_n every_o one_o be_v to_o serve_v he_o this_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n mean_v when_o he_o say_v by_o love_n serve_v one_o another_o gal._n 5.13_o and_o this_o give_v and_o receive_v assistance_n the_o same_o apostle_n call_v communicate_v with_o he_o phil._n 4.15_o if_o this_o catholic_n communion_n be_v but_o due_o maintain_v among_o all_o christian_n how_o like_o a_o heaven_n upon_o earth_n will_v the_o catholic_n church_n be_v and_o how_o happy_a will_v they_o be_v even_o now_o for_o the_o present_a that_o be_v of_o it_o and_o how_o will_v the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v not_o of_o it_o then_o flow_v into_o it_o and_o yet_o for_o christian_n thus_o to_o exchange_v office_n of_o love_n with_o one_o another_o be_v nothing_o more_o than_o what_o we_o be_v all_o oblige_v to_o by_o the_o royal_a law_n of_o love_n thou_o shall_v love_v thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o for_o if_o i_o be_o hereby_o bind_v to_o love_v every_o neighbour_n as_o myself_o so_o be_v every_o neighbout_o oblige_v by_o it_o to_o love_v i_o as_o they_o love_v themselves_o and_o how_o delightful_a a_o commerce_n will_v this_o be_v if_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v but_o so_o happy_a as_o to_o hit_v on_o it_o the_o particular_a duty_n and_o office_n of_o love_n in_o which_o this_o part_n of_o christian_a communion_n do_v consist_v be_v such_o as_o these_o the_o instruct_v and_o exhort_v one_o another_o the_o watch_v over_o and_o admonish_v one_o another_o the_o strengthen_v the_o feeble_a mind_v the_o visit_n and_o comfort_v the_o afflict_a the_o relieve_v one_o another_o want_n the_o bear_n on_o another_o burden_n the_o have_v the_o same_o care_n one_o for_o another_o and_o the_o like_a together_o with_o these_o we_o may_v reckon_v the_o yield_n and_o allow_v to_o every_o one_o the_o liberty_n of_o share_v in_o the_o common_a privilege_n of_o enjoy_v communion_n in_o gospel-ordinance_n and_o worship_n so_o long_o as_o they_o have_v not_o make_v themselves_o uncapable_a of_o it_o by_o draw_v on_o themselves_o deserve_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o be_v otherwise_o natural_o uncapable_a of_o the_o end_n and_o use_v for_o which_o those_o ordinance_n or_o any_o of_o they_o be_v ordain_v as_o little_a child_n seem_v to_o be_v in_o reference_n to_o the_o lord_n supper_n thus_o much_o brief_o touch_v the_o nature_n of_o catholic_n commumunion_n come_v we_o now_o to_o inquire_v how_o and_o by_o what_o mean_v it_o may_v best_o be_v preserve_v there_o be_v two_o bond_n which_o the_o scripture_n mention_n by_o which_o christian_n be_v bind_v and_o knit_v together_o in_o one_o communion_n the_o bond_n of_o charity_n and_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n 1_o the_o bond_n of_o charity_n above_o all_o these_o thing_n put_v on_o charity_n which_o be_v the_o bond_n of_o perfectness_n col._n 3.14_o charity_n be_v a_o bond_n which_o knit_v and_o unite_v man_n heart_n together_o and_o make_v they_o one_o in_o affection_n knit_v together_o in_o love_n as_o as_o it_o be_v express_v col._n 2.2_o and_o while_o they_o be_v so_o it_o can_v hardly_o be_v but_o that_o they_o will_v be_v one_o in_o communion_n this_o be_v that_o which_o make_v the_o catholic_n church_n in_o its_o beginning_n to_o be_v all_o of_o one_o heart_n and_o one_o soul_n as_o it_o be_v say_v the_o multitude_n of_o they_o that_o believe_v be_v act_v 4.32_o and_o that_o be_v the_o reason_n doubtless_o why_o they_o continue_v steadfast_o in_o their_o communion_n in_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o fellowship_n and_o in_o break_v of_o bread_n and_o prayer_n charity_n we_o see_v be_v call_v the_o bond_n of_o perfectness_n for_o the_o church_n be_v in_o a_o kind_n of_o perfect_a state_n in_o her_o communion_n so_o long_o as_o the_o part_n and_o member_n of_o it_o be_v knit_v together_o in_o one_o communion_n by_o love_n make_v perfect_a in_o one_o as_o our_o saviour_n express_v it_o joh._n 17.23_o and_o the_o union_n in_o communion_n which_o be_v make_v by_o love_n be_v union_n in_o its_o perfection_n nothing_o unite_v christian_n so_o entire_o and_o firm_o as_o love_n do_v if_o christian_n love_v one_o another_o in_o the_o truth_n and_o for_o the_o truth_n sake_n which_o dwell_v in_o they_o as_o st._n john_n speak_v this_o love_n and_o union_n by_o love_n will_v last_v there_o will_v be_v no_o failure_n in_o the_o oneness_n of_o communion_n until_o there_o be_v first_o a_o failure_n in_o love_n charity_n must_v needs_o unite_v and_o knit_v christian_n together_o in_o one_o communion_n because_o it_o be_v the_o principle_n from_o which_o the_o particular_a act_n of_o christian_a fellowship_n forementioned_a do_v spring_n a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o act_n of_o christian_a communion_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o office_n of_o brotherly_a love_n and_o by_o these_o christian_n take_v fast_o hold_v one_o of_o another_o charity_n in_o its_o own_o nature_n be_v communicative_a of_o the_o good_a it_o have_v and_o the_o good_a it_o can_v do_v and_o by_o that_o it_o do_v attract_v and_o draw_v other_o to_o a_o near_a conjunction_n with_o those_o in_o who_o it_o dwell_v charity_n be_v the_o arm_n of_o the_o christian_n inner_a man_n by_o which_o they_o embrace_v one_o another_o though_o absent_a love_n be_v of_o a_o win_a nature_n it_o gain_v upon_o other_o that_o stand_v at_o a_o distance_n if_o a_o principle_n of_o love_n be_v in_o the_o heart_n it_o will_v season_v a_o man_n speech_n and_o enable_v he_o to_o speak_v the_o truth_n in_o love_n according_a to_o st._n paul_n direction_n and_o the_o truth_n speak_v in_o love_n will_v soon_o reconcile_v than_o the_o strong_a argument_n when_o mix_v with_o bitterness_n of_o spirit_n a_o tongue_n of_o love_n be_v solomon_n tongue_n of_o health_n it_o will_v heal_v wound_n when_o another_o tongue_n do_v but_o make_v they_o and_o therefore_o with_o great_a reason_n do_v st._n paul_n call_v upon_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n to_o do_v all_o their_o thing_n with_o charity_n and_o spend_v a_o whole_a chapter_n upon_o they_o to_o persuade_v they_o to_o it_o as_o a_o effectual_a mean_n to_o cure_v the_o division_n into_o which_o they_o be_v unhappy_o fall_v again_o charity_n cover_v a_o multitude_n of_o sin_n 1_o pet._n 4.8_o and_o by_o that_o mean_n among_o other_o it_o keep_v christian_n from_o fly_v asunder_o and_o divide_v in_o their_o communion_n which_o many_o time_n take_v its_o first_o rise_n from_o very_o small_a matter_n when_o they_o meet_v with_o a_o evil_a mind_n that_o will_v aggravate_v and_o make_v the_o worst_a of_o thing_n and_o seek_v out_o matter_n to_o make_v the_o breach_n wide_o but_o charity_n be_v not_o apt_a to_o spy_v fault_n or_o to_o pick_v quarrel_n nor_o to_o aggravate_v and_o make_v the_o worst_a of_o thing_n nor_o to_o harbour_v jealousy_n or_o evil_a surmise_n out_o of_o which_o breach_n be_v wont_a to_o grow_v but_o it_o will_v overlook_a man_n weakness_n mistake_n and_o inadvertency_n as_o believe_v they_o do_v not_o proceed_v from_o a_o evil_a mind_n and_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v amiss_o love_n will_v take_v notice_n of_o all_o the_o extenuate_a circumstance_n in_o the_o
out_o of_o scruple_n of_o conscience_n and_o other_o from_o a_o worse_a principle_n will_v be_v apt_a to_o take_v occasion_n to_o disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n with_o dispute_n and_o by_o desert_v the_o communion_n of_o it_o and_o then_o moderation_n and_o prudence_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o same_o end_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o discipline_n in_o the_o church_n by_o make_v a_o difference_n in_o correct_v open_a and_o notorious_a scandal_n and_o lesser_a disorder_n for_o else_o if_o both_o be_v punish_v alike_o when_o they_o be_v not_o alike_o criminal_a or_o if_o lesser_a disorder_n shall_v be_v strict_o look_v after_o and_o severe_o punish_v and_o great_a connive_v at_o it_o will_v tend_v to_o lessen_v the_o government_n in_o man_n reverence_n and_o esteem_v and_o so_o weaken_v the_o fence_n of_o the_o church_n peace_n and_o render_v communion_n with_o she_o less_o desirable_a by_o such_o as_o will_v take_v themselves_o to_o be_v unequal_o deal_v with_o by_o she_o but_o as_o good_a government_n in_o the_o church_n be_v necessary_a to_o its_o peace_n and_o to_o unity_n in_o its_o communion_n so_o be_v obedience_n to_o such_o government_n without_o which_o government_n lose_v its_o end_n but_o when_o the_o government_n and_o exercise_n of_o it_o be_v equal_a and_o as_o easy_a as_o will_v consist_v with_o the_o due_a end_n of_o it_o then_o if_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o man_n will_v be_v troublesome_a and_o disobedient_a under_o it_o they_o will_v be_v leave_v without_o excuse_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o sober_a man_n if_o fit_v course_n be_v take_v to_o restrain_v they_o from_o disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n for_o otherwise_o if_o this_o be_v not_o grant_v government_n in_o the_o church_n will_v signify_v little_a thus_o much_o concern_v our_o inquiry_n touch_v the_o nature_n of_o catholic_n communion_n and_o the_o mean_n of_o preserve_v it_o but_o before_o i_o proceed_v to_o a_o inquiry_n into_o the_o nature_n of_o schism_n i_o think_v it_o not_o amiss_o to_o inquire_v for_o what_o reason_n the_o unity_n of_o catholic_n communion_n be_v necessary_a and_o why_o we_o shall_v endeavour_v that_o as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v it_o shall_v be_v keep_v entire_a and_o all_o of_o a_o piece_n and_o without_o fracture_n and_o the_o only_a reason_n which_o i_o shall_v insist_v on_o be_v this_o because_o its_o be_v such_o and_o so_o keep_v and_o maintain_v tend_v great_o to_o the_o growth_n and_o increase_n of_o the_o church_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o number_n of_o its_o member_n and_o bigness_n of_o its_o body_n and_o also_o in_o respect_n of_o its_o healthful_a state_n and_o its_o grow_a up_o to_o a_o great_a stature_n in_o all_o virtue_n and_o goodness_n 1._o it_o tend_v to_o the_o increase_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christian_n in_o the_o number_n of_o its_o member_n for_o next_o to_o the_o miraculous_a operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a believer_n the_o peaceable_a and_o charitable_a demeanour_n among_o christian_n and_o good_a agreement_n among_o themselves_o if_o it_o be_v general_o find_v in_o they_o will_v attract_v and_o draw_v man_n to_o the_o like_n and_o love_n of_o the_o religion_n which_o they_o profess_v for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o lovely_a effect_n it_o produce_v in_o they_o man_n can_v hardly_o think_v otherwise_o than_o well_o of_o that_o religion_n by_o which_o they_o find_v man_n be_v make_v more_o peaceable_a and_o love_a and_o more_o ready_a to_o all_o good_a office_n to_o one_o another_o and_o to_o all_o man_n than_o other_o be_v or_o than_o they_o themselves_o be_v before_o they_o engage_v hearty_o and_o serious_o in_o it_o and_o that_o the_o concord_n and_o good_a agreement_n of_o all_o christian_n in_o one_o catholic_n communion_n have_v so_o happy_a a_o tendency_n as_o i_o have_v say_v to_o draw_v other_o to_o the_o belief_n &_o love_n of_o that_o same_o religion_n appear_v by_o the_o reason_n why_o and_o for_o which_o our_o bless_a saviour_n so_o earnest_o desire_v and_o pray_v for_o the_o union_n and_o agreement_n of_o all_o christian_n in_o the_o thing_n their_o religien_n teach_v they_o to_o wit_n because_o the_o world_n will_v thereby_o be_v bring_v to_o believe_v that_o he_o the_o author_n of_o it_o have_v be_v send_v of_o god_n joh._n 17.20_o 21._o neither_o pray_v i_o for_o these_o alone_a but_o for_o they_o also_o which_o shall_v believe_v on_o i_o through_o their_o word_n that_o they_o all_o may_v be_v one_o as_o thou_o father_n be_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o thou_o that_o they_o also_o may_v be_v one_o in_o we_o that_o the_o world_n may_v believe_v that_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o and_o it_o be_v most_o apparent_a that_o the_o contrary_a to_o this_o have_v have_v its_o contrary_a effect_n for_o where_o have_v any_o such_o numerous_a addition_n to_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v find_v from_o among_o the_o pagan_a world_n since_o the_o great_a division_n which_o have_v rise_v and_o be_v keep_v on_o foot_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n as_o those_o which_o be_v make_v for_o some_o hundred_o of_o year_n together_o in_o the_o primitive_a time_n while_n catholic_n communion_n be_v preserve_v in_o the_o church_n without_o any_o considerable_a interruption_n nay_o have_v not_o the_o unreasonable_a division_n and_o fierce_a contention_n which_o have_v break_v out_o in_o the_o reform_a church_n since_o the_o reformation_n and_o in_o our_o own_o nation_n especial_o be_v a_o temptation_n to_o many_o to_o turn_v atheist_n or_o sceptic_n the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o many_o place_n seem_v to_o foretell_v a_o more_o general_a flow_a of_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n into_o the_o church_n than_o ever_o yet_o have_v be_v accomplish_v but_o we_o can_v reasonable_o expect_v this_o shall_v be_v bring_v to_o pass_v by_o mean_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o be_v until_o by_o humility_n peaceableness_n and_o charity_n and_o good_a agreement_n among_o themselves_o and_o other_o virtue_n they_o make_v a_o better_a representation_n of_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o religion_n which_o they_o profess_v than_o they_o do_v at_o this_o day_n when_o god_n almighty_a turn_n to_o the_o people_n a_o pure_a language_n than_o it_o may_v be_v expect_v they_o will_v call_v upon_o he_o and_o serve_v he_o with_o one_o consent_n as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v zeph._n 3.9_o not_o while_o they_o treat_v one_o another_o with_o impure_a and_o corrupt_a language_n which_o smell_n of_o wrath_n and_o disdain_n of_o envy_n spite_n and_o contempt_n not_o while_o by_o word_n they_o do_v all_o they_o can_v to_o disgrace_v one_o another_o but_o by_o speak_v the_o truth_n in_o love_n and_o with_o meekness_n of_o wisdom_n 2._o the_o good_a agreement_n of_o christian_n in_o one_o catholic_n communion_n tend_v great_o to_o the_o increase_n of_o the_o church_n in_o respect_n of_o its_o spiritual_a healthful_a state_n and_o its_o grow_a up_o to_o a_o great_a stature_n in_o all_o virtue_n and_o goodness_n for_o where_o peace_n and_o good_a agreement_n be_v in_o the_o several_a office_n of_o christian_a brotherhood_n there_o love_n be_v which_o be_v the_o bond_n of_o perfectness_n which_o hold_v they_o fast_o together_o and_o love_n be_v a_o radical_a grace_n out_o of_o which_o other_o grace_n grow_v in_o so_o much_o that_o love_n be_v make_v the_o summary_n of_o all_o christian_a duty_n towards_o one_o another_o love_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n rom._n 13.8.10_o charity_n edifi_v say_v st._n paul_n 1_o cor._n 8.1_o it_o tend_v to_o edify_v and_o build_v up_o the_o subject_n in_o which_o it_o dwell_v and_o to_o make_v he_o more_o like_a god_n who_o be_v love_n and_o it_o tend_v to_o edify_v the_o object_n on_o which_o it_o be_v set_v and_o on_o which_o it_o exercise_v itself_o it_o tend_v to_o build_v up_o both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o in_o grace_n and_o goodness_n and_o there_o be_v this_o further_a reason_n why_o a_o peaceable_a agreement_n in_o one_o catholic_n communion_n tend_v to_o increase_v the_o church_n in_o her_o spiritual_a riches_n viz._n because_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n delight_v to_o dwell_v where_o peace_n and_o love_n dwell_v and_o there_o to_o dispense_v and_o communicate_v his_o treasure_n by_o which_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v enrich_v but_o without_o his_o supply_n influence_n and_o operation_n there_o be_v no_o thrive_n in_o grace_n and_o real_a goodness_n he_o that_o dwell_v in_o love_n god_n dwell_v in_o he_o 1_o joh._n 4.16_o and_o where_o god_n take_v up_o his_o special_a residence_n he_o will_v adorn_v those_o live_a temple_n with_o plenty_n of_o spiritual_a ornament_n and_o those_o shall_v be_v sure_a to_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o his_o best_a sort_n of_o gift_n such_o as_o the_o world_n can_v receive_v be_v of_o one_o mind_n live_v in_o peace_n and_o
the_o god_n of_o love_n and_o peace_n shall_v be_v with_o you_o say_v st._n paul_n 2_o cor._n 13.11_o while_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v of_o one_o mind_n in_o the_o great_a thing_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o be_v so_o do_v live_v in_o peace_n and_o not_o unpeaceable_o contend_v fall_v out_o and_o divide_v about_o lesser_a thing_n such_o as_o for_o which_o god_n perhaps_o do_v neither_o esteem_n or_o disesteem_a man_n he_o who_o be_v the_o god_n of_o love_n and_o peace_n will_v be_v with_o they_o to_o bless_v they_o with_o his_o presence_n with_o spiritual_a blessing_n especial_o and_o as_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o soul_n in_o the_o body_n enlivens_fw-la it_o with_o natural_a life_n by_o virtue_n whereof_o the_o several_a member_n perform_v their_o several_a function_n proper_a to_o each_o of_o they_o respective_o even_o so_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o church_n do_v animate_v it_o with_o spiritual_a life_n and_o do_v so_o influence_n and_o actuate_v the_o several_a member_n of_o it_o as_o that_o by_o virtue_n thereof_o they_o all_o perform_v their_o several_a christian_a office_n proper_a to_o each_o for_o the_o common_a good_a of_o the_o whole_a but_o then_o this_o vital_a power_n of_o act_v spiritual_o be_v convey_v by_o the_o spirit_n to_o each_o of_o the_o member_n as_o they_o be_v in_o union_n and_o communion_n with_o the_o whole_a and_o so_o as_o one_o member_n be_v make_v a_o channel_n of_o this_o conveyance_n to_o another_o and_o each_o enable_v to_o contribute_v its_o part_n to_o the_o common_a good_a of_o the_o whole_a thus_o col._n 2.19_o where_o st._n paul_n mention_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n say_v from_o which_o all_o the_o body_n by_o joint_n and_o bond_n have_v nourishment_n minister_v and_o knit_v together_o increase_v with_o the_o increase_n of_o god_n this_o spiritual_a nourishment_n of_o the_o body_n flow_v from_o christ_n the_o head_n we_o see_v as_o have_v obtain_v it_o by_o his_o mediation_n but_o than_o it_o be_v the_o great_a office-work_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o apply_v the_o benesit_n obtain_v by_o christ_n to_o the_o several_a member_n of_o his_o body_n by_o work_v and_o increase_a grace_n and_o comfort_n in_o they_o he_o shall_v glorify_v i_o for_o he_o shall_v receive_v of_o i_o and_o show_v it_o unto_o you_o say_v our_o saviour_n speak_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n joh._n 16.14_o and_o this_o conveyance_n of_o nourishment_n from_o the_o head_n to_o the_o member_n by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v make_v by_o the_o union_n of_o the_o part_n as_o knit_v together_o by_o joint_n and_o band_n by_o which_o union_n one_o member_n be_v make_v a_o channel_n of_o conveyance_n of_o nourishment_n to_o another_o and_o in_o this_o way_n the_o whole_a body_n increase_v with_o the_o increase_n of_o god_n this_o be_v so_o a_o disunion_n of_o the_o part_n or_o member_n must_v needs_o obstruct_v this_o spiritual_a nourishment_n and_o hinder_v the_o growth_n of_o the_o body_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n be_v that_o parallel_a place_n ephes_n 4.15_o 16._o speak_v the_o truth_n in_o love_n may_v grow_v up_o into_o he_o in_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v the_o head_n even_o christ_n from_o who_o the_o whole_a body_n fit_o join_v together_o and_o compact_v by_o that_o which_o every_o joint_n supply_v according_a to_o the_o effectual_a work_n of_o the_o measure_n of_o every_o part_n make_v increase_v of_o the_o body_n unto_o the_o edify_n of_o itself_o in_o love_n this_o increase_n of_o the_o body_n to_o the_o edify_a itself_o in_o love_n be_v make_v we_o see_v both_o by_o the_o part_n of_o the_o body_n be_v join_v together_o and_o also_o by_o that_o which_o every_o joint_n suppli_v be_v so_o compact_v thus_o we_o see_v how_o the_o increase_n of_o the_o church_n in_o spiritual_a strength_n depend_v upon_o god_n special_a presence_n and_o assistance_n and_o how_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o that_o presence_n depend_v upon_o the_o peaceable_a agreement_n and_o mutual_a love_n of_o the_o part_n of_o which_o the_o church_n do_v consist_v and_o if_o so_o then_o unpeaceableness_n discord_n and_o strife_n contention_n and_o divide_v into_o party_n in_o the_o church_n must_v necessary_o tend_v to_o deprive_v she_o of_o that_o special_a presence_n and_o divine_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n without_o which_o christian_n can_v thrive_v and_o increase_v in_o true_a goodness_n and_o for_o want_v of_o which_o they_o will_v rather_o decline_v and_o go_v backward_o though_o the_o god_n of_o peace_n and_o of_o love_n will_v be_v with_o his_o people_n while_o they_o be_v so_o of_o one_o mind_n in_o the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n as_o upon_o that_o account_n to_o live_v in_o peace_n and_o christian_a communion_n one_o with_o another_o notwithstanding_o their_o differ_v in_o some_o lesser_a thing_n which_o will_v always_o be_v find_v in_o the_o best_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n which_o can_v be_v expect_v here_o on_o earth_n yet_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o expect_v he_o will_v be_v so_o with_o they_o when_o they_o do_v not_o so_o live_v in_o peace_n though_o they_o shall_v otherwise_o be_v of_o one_o mind_n in_o the_o fundamental_a doctrine_n of_o christianity_n and_o all_o the_o substantial_a part_n of_o worship_n the_o holy_a spirit_n may_v indeed_o dispense_v gift_n of_o knowledge_n and_o utterance_n and_o the_o like_a which_o be_v common_a to_o bad_a man_n as_o well_o as_o good_a such_o as_o these_o he_o may_v bestow_v upon_o christian_n even_o while_o they_o be_v in_o disorder_n and_o unpeaceable_a division_n but_o as_o for_o those_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o constitute_v man_n true_o good_a such_o as_o love_v joy_n peace_n long-suffering_a gentleness_n goodness_n and_o meekness_n gal._n 5.22_o the_o have_v of_o these_o and_o man_n be_v of_o a_o unpeaceable_a temper_n and_o in_o a_o state_n of_o discord_n and_o division_n be_v i_o fear_v inconsistent_a for_o these_o be_v contrary_a one_o to_o another_o though_o st._n paul_n acknowledge_v those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n to_o be_v enrich_v with_o all_o utterance_n and_o all_o knowledge_n chap._n 1_o 5._o yet_o in_o chap._n 3.1_o he_o tell_v they_o that_o he_o can_v not_o speak_v unto_o they_o as_o unto_o spiritual_a but_o as_o unto_o carnal_a even_o as_o to_o babe_n in_o christ_n and_o for_o this_o reason_n as_o it_o follow_v in_o ver_fw-la 3._o because_o there_o be_v among_o they_o envy_v strife_n and_o division_n you_o be_v yet_o carnal_a say_v he_o for_o whereas_o there_o be_v among_o you_o envy_v and_o strife_n and_o division_n be_v you_o not_o carnal_a and_o walk_v as_o man_n that_o be_v as_o other_o man_n which_o be_v no_o christian_n they_o may_v indeed_o know_v and_o believe_v and_o talk_v otherwise_o and_o better_o than_o those_o that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n but_o their_o walk_n and_o live_v be_v but_o as_o they_o while_o envy_v strife_n and_o division_n be_v find_v with_o they_o for_o these_o be_v of_o those_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o which_o st._n paul_n say_v that_o those_o which_o do_v such_o thing_n shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n gal._n 5.20_o 21._o and_o if_o christian_n will_v but_o examine_v and_o judge_v of_o themselves_o by_o these_o scripture_n measure_n it_o will_v make_v they_o on_o all_o hand_n one_o side_n as_o well_o as_o another_o to_o be_v as_o much_o afraid_a to_o do_v any_o thing_n to_o disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n or_o to_o be_v guilty_a of_o envy_v strife_n and_o division_n in_o it_o as_o they_o will_v be_v to_o find_v themselves_o but_o in_o a_o carnal_a state_n and_o of_o be_v shut_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o as_o for_o those_o who_o be_v guilty_a of_o these_o thing_n in_o these_o sad_a time_n wherein_o envy_v strife_n and_o division_n do_v abound_v it_o be_v huge_o necessary_a that_o as_o they_o love_v their_o own_o soul_n they_o will_v without_o delay_n repent_v and_o get_v out_o of_o such_o a_o state_n and_o not_o flatter_v and_o deceive_v themselves_o with_o a_o opinion_n of_o their_o good_a and_o safe_a condition_n upon_o account_n of_o their_o be_v otherwise_o orthodox_n and_o religious_a so_o long_o as_o they_o indulge_v themselves_o in_o such_o a_o state_n query_n fourteen_o what_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o schism_n from_o what_o have_v be_v discourse_v touch_v the_o nature_n of_o catholic_n communion_n and_o the_o mean_n of_o preserve_v it_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o make_v a_o judgement_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o schism_n what_o it_o be_v and_o who_o be_v guilty_a of_o it_o for_o if_o catholic_n communion_n stand_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o christian_n unity_n in_o their_o communion_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n in_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o in_o the_o
substance_n of_o worship_n and_o in_o their_o fellowship_n or_o mutual_a love_n as_o i_o have_v show_v it_o do_v then_o their_o be_v divide_v in_o these_o or_o any_o one_o of_o these_o or_o in_o any_o lesser_a thing_n if_o the_o unity_n of_o their_o communion_n be_v thereby_o destroy_v that_o undoubted_o be_v schism_n when_o any_o thing_n which_o before_o be_v but_o one_o come_v to_o be_v divide_v it_o cease_v to_o be_v one_o any_o long_o unless_o there_o be_v a_o reunion_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v in_o reference_n to_o church_n communion_n although_o christian_n do_v agree_v in_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o in_o the_o substance_n of_o worship_n also_o yet_o if_o upon_o account_n of_o any_o lesser_a thing_n they_o be_v so_o divide_v as_o that_o christian_a fellowship_n or_o brotherly_a love_n be_v thereby_o destroy_v their_o unity_n of_o communion_n be_v thereby_o destroy_v also_o i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o all_o their_o communion_n in_o those_o thing_n wherein_o they_o be_v agree_v be_v destroy_v by_o uncharitable_a division_n but_o this_o i_o say_v that_o the_o unity_n of_o their_o communion_n be_v thereby_o destroy_v for_o brotherly_a love_n be_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o cotholick_a communion_n so_o that_o if_o that_o be_v destroy_v by_o any_o division_n though_o but_o about_o lesser_a matter_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o communion_n be_v destroy_v and_o the_o guilt_n of_o schism_n contract_v yea_o and_o their_o communion_n itself_o in_o faith_n and_o worship_n wherein_o they_o be_v agree_v be_v great_o damnify_v also_o for_o their_o communion_n in_o faith_n and_o worship_n be_v render_v unacceptable_a to_o god_n and_o unprofitable_a to_o themselves_o for_o want_n of_o communion_n in_o brotherly_a love_n though_o i_o have_v all_o faith_n and_o have_v not_o charity_n i_o be_o nothing_o and_o for_o worship_n if_o thou_o bring_v thy_o gift_n to_o the_o altar_n and_o remembere_v that_o thy_o brother_n have_v aught_o against_o thou_o leave_v there_o thy_o gift_n before_o the_o altar_n and_o go_v thy_o way_n first_o be_v reconcile_v to_o thy_o brother_n and_o then_o come_v and_o offer_v thy_o gift_n show_v how_o little_a god_n regard_v devotional_a communion_n in_o worship_n when_o void_a of_o true_a charity_n the_o schism_n we_o inquire_v after_o then_o lie_v in_o division_n in_o the_o church_n as_o that_o be_v opposite_a to_o and_o destructive_a of_o christian_a unity_n in_o faith_n or_o in_o worship_n or_o in_o love_n and_o all_o church_n division_n tend_v more_o or_o less_o to_o the_o destruction_n of_o christian_a unity_n in_o these_o in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n that_o it_o lie_v in_o division_n appear_v in_o that_o it_o receive_v its_o name_n from_o that_o for_o the_o word_n schism_n signify_v division_n or_o a_o rent_n and_o the_o translator_n of_o our_o english_a bible_n when_o they_o have_v put_v the_o word_n division_n in_o the_o line_n read_v they_o have_v put_v schism_n in_o the_o margin_n 1_o cor_n 10.10_o and_o 11.18_o and_o when_o schism_n in_o the_o line_n division_n in_o the_o margin_n 1_o cor._n 12.25_o and_o this_o they_o have_v do_v to_o explain_v the_o one_o by_o the_o other_o since_o than_o schism_n consist_v in_o church_n division_n it_o follow_v that_o by_o how_o much_o the_o great_a the_o division_n be_v at_o any_o time_n by_o so_o much_o the_o great_a be_v the_o schism_n and_o the_o less_o the_o one_o be_v the_o less_o be_v the_o other_o also_o we_o must_v therefore_o distinguish_v of_o schism_n there_o be_v several_a sort_n or_o degree_n of_o division_n and_o so_o of_o schism_n which_o be_v sometime_o find_v among_o christian_n i._o a_o different_a persuasion_n in_o christian_n touch_v some_o thing_n indifferent_a in_o their_o own_o nature_n some_o hold_v they_o unlawful_a other_o lawful_a some_o account_v they_o necessary_a when_o other_o be_v otherwise_o persuade_v this_o difference_n fall_v out_o between_o the_o believe_a jew_n and_o the_o believe_a gentile_n touch_v some_o meat_n the_o observation_n of_o day_n and_o the_o use_n of_o circumcision_n and_o a_o difference_n much_o like_o to_o this_o in_o some_o respect_n have_v fall_v our_o among_o some_o christian_n in_o our_o day_n and_o in_o our_o nation_n now_o a_o difference_n of_o this_o nature_n though_o it_o be_v in_o some_o sort_n a_o division_n yet_o it_o be_v capable_a of_o be_v so_o manage_v as_o that_o the_o effect_n of_o sinful_a schism_n shall_v scarce_o at_o all_o follow_v upon_o it_o as_o thus_o first_o if_o those_o who_o be_v scrupulous_a and_o yet_o under_o a_o mistake_n shall_v be_v modest_a and_o humble_a in_o their_o dissent_v and_o desirous_a to_o be_v as_o little_a troublesome_a and_o offensive_a to_o their_o brethren_n from_o who_o they_o differ_v as_o possible_o they_o can_v and_o as_o tender_v of_o disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n as_o their_o case_n will_v permit_v and_o ready_a to_o hear_v and_o impartial_o to_o consider_v any_o thing_n offer_v by_o their_o brethren_n to_o remove_v their_o scruple_n and_o reconcile_v they_o in_o judgement_n second_o if_o they_o be_v not_o averse_a to_o comply_v with_o their_o brethren_n in_o all_o thing_n so_o far_o as_o they_o can_v and_o to_o hold_v communion_n with_o they_o so_o far_o as_o they_o have_v attain_v and_o be_v agree_v according_a to_o the_o apostle_n exhortation_n in_o that_o case_n when_o he_o say_v nevertheless_o whereto_o we_o have_v already_o attain_v let_v we_o walk_v by_o the_o same_o rule_n let_v we_o mind_n the_o same_o thing_n phil._n 3.16_o for_o these_o word_n be_v use_v in_o reference_n to_o those_o christian_n mention_v in_o the_o verse_n before_o of_o who_o he_o have_v say_v if_o in_o any_o thing_n you_o be_v otherwise_o mind_v god_n shall_v reveal_v even_o this_o unto_o you_o and_o indeed_o this_o compliance_n be_v necessary_a in_o all_o like_a case_n to_o prevent_v schism_n upon_o a_o double_a account_n 1._o otherwise_o such_o do_v not_o what_o they_o can_v to_o preserve_v peace_n and_o prevent_v schism_n and_o so_o must_v be_v guilty_a of_o it_o if_o it_o follow_v for_o want_v of_o such_o compliance_n that_o to_o do_v thus_o be_v their_o undoubted_a duty_n be_v clear_a from_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 12.18_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o you_o live_v peaceable_o with_o all_o man_n how_o much_o more_o with_o fellow_n christian_n if_o christian_a compliance_n than_o be_v the_o way_n to_o live_v peaceable_o with_o christian_a brethren_n than_o it_o follow_v that_o if_o they_o do_v not_o comply_v as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v and_o as_o far_o as_o they_o can_v when_o the_o preserve_n of_o peace_n require_v it_o they_o do_v not_o what_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v and_o if_o schism_n or_o a_o breach_n of_o peace_n follow_v they_o must_v needs_o be_v accessary_a to_o it_o and_o guilty_a of_o it_o 2._o because_o if_o they_o do_v not_o comply_v so_o far_o as_o they_o can_v they_o give_v occasion_n of_o suspicion_n that_o their_o noncompliance_n in_o that_o wherein_o their_o differ_v from_o their_o brethren_n profess_o lie_v proceed_v not_o so_o much_o from_o scruple_n of_o conscience_n as_o from_o some_o worse_a principle_n such_o as_o humour_n self_n will_v a_o spirit_n of_o opposition_n and_o contradiction_n or_o a_o personal_a prejudice_n against_o the_o man_n from_o who_o they_o differ_v or_o the_o like_a for_o it_o will_v be_v think_v that_o if_o conscience_n to_o god_n be_v the_o only_a reason_n why_o they_o differ_v with_o their_o brethren_n in_o any_o thing_n that_o then_o conscience_n will_v engage_v they_o to_o go_v along_o with_o their_o brethren_n in_o that_o wherein_o they_o do_v not_o differ_v and_o to_o be_v tender_a and_o scrupulous_a of_o make_v the_o difference_n or_o breach_n between_o they_o wide_o than_o needs_o must_v and_o of_o multiply_a occasion_n of_o offence_n causeless_o man_n can_v be_v confident_a when_o they_o see_v such_o man_n be_v not_o tender_a of_o conscience_n in_o the_o one_o that_o they_o be_v so_o in_o the_o other_o but_o will_v be_v apt_a to_o suspect_v that_o their_o differ_v proceed_v chief_o from_o some_o worse_a cause_n though_o the_o party_n themselves_o perhaps_o be_v not_o aware_a of_o it_o but_o think_v it_o proceed_v from_o the_o goodness_n of_o their_o conscience_n when_o there_o be_v no_o such_o matter_n and_o when_o this_o occasion_n of_o suspicion_n be_v give_v by_o not_o comply_v in_o what_o they_o can_v the_o natural_a effect_n of_o it_o will_v be_v to_o weaken_v man_n esteem_n of_o they_o and_o affection_n to_o they_o and_o to_o prepare_v the_o way_n to_o far_a difference_n whereas_o a_o compliance_n as_o far_o as_o possible_o they_o can_v will_v maintain_v a_o good_a opinion_n of_o they_o in_o man_n mind_n procure_v they_o fair_a quarter_n from_o they_o that_o differ_v from_o they_o prevent_v the_o differenee_n from_o grow_v up_o into_o a_o
direct_a schism_n and_o prepare_v the_o way_n to_o reconciliation_n for_o when_o it_o do_v indeed_o appear_v by_o comply_v as_o far_o as_o they_o can_v and_o by_o other_o true_o christian_a behaviour_n of_o person_n that_o through_o error_n of_o judgement_n differ_v from_o their_o brethren_n in_o other_o thing_n that_o that_o difference_n proceed_v pure_o from_o conscience_n though_o erroneous_a and_o not_o from_o a_o worse_a principle_n their_o case_n be_v true_o pitiable_a and_o call_v for_o tenderness_n towards_o they_o from_o they_o that_o differ_v from_o they_o and_o to_o treat_v they_o according_o be_v certain_o the_o way_n to_o gain_v upon_o they_o and_o to_o make_v they_o the_o more_o capable_a of_o receive_v information_n and_o satisfaction_n in_o their_o scruple_n whereas_o when_o they_o be_v otherwise_o treat_v with_o severity_n it_o tend_v to_o spoil_v their_o good_a temper_n and_o to_o exasperate_v they_o and_o to_o make_v they_o out_o of_o disgust_n to_o they_o who_o have_v so_o deal_v with_o they_o to_o unite_v into_o party_n and_o make_v head_n against_o they_o to_o the_o imbroil_v the_o church_n in_o grievous_a schism_n 2._o there_o be_v another_o and_o worse_a division_n or_o schism_n than_o mere_a difference_n in_o judgement_n and_o practice_n in_o some_o lesser_a thing_n and_o that_o division_n lie_v more_o in_o christian_n unchristian_a manage_v their_o difference_n than_o in_o the_o difference_n that_o be_v in_o their_o opinion_n and_o practice_n when_o it_o be_v but_o about_o some_o thing_n wherein_o the_o good_a or_o hurt_n of_o man_n will_v be_v little_o concern_v if_o they_o can_v be_v separate_v from_o their_o effect_n and_o this_o division_n lie_v in_o the_o immoderate_a manner_n of_o contend_v for_o that_o wherein_o christian_n differ_v as_o thus_o when_o they_o do_v not_o content_v themselves_o with_o offer_v their_o argument_n fair_o and_o peaceable_o for_o that_o wherein_o they_o differ_v but_o fall_v out_o with_o their_o brethren_n for_o not_o submit_v to_o but_o oppose_v they_o both_o in_o their_o argument_n and_o practice_n as_o when_o they_o set_v they_o at_o naught_o and_o censure_v they_o as_o insincere_a as_o not_o true_o lover_n of_o truth_n but_o that_o they_o be_v bias_v by_o some_o undue_a interest_n of_o honour_n reputation_n or_o gain_v or_o humour_n or_o self-will_n and_o that_o these_o prevail_v with_o they_o more_o than_o truth_n now_o such_o thing_n as_o these_o be_v of_o a_o provoke_a nature_n and_o lay_v a_o temptation_n upon_o their_o brethren_n passion_n and_o tend_v direct_o to_o alienate_v affection_n and_o minister_v to_o unpeaceable_a contending_n and_o be_v a_o direct_a breach_n of_o peace_n though_o man_n have_v truth_n on_o their_o side_n yet_o they_o may_v be_v schismatical_a in_o labour_v to_o propagate_v or_o to_o defend_v that_o truth_n when_o they_o go_v far_o in_o do_v so_o than_o speak_v the_o truth_n in_o love_n i_o mean_v in_o way_n of_o controversy_n though_o those_o that_o differ_v from_o they_o may_v possible_o be_v move_v with_o undue_a motive_n to_o oppose_v they_o and_o the_o reason_n for_o what_o they_o hold_v yet_o because_o whether_o they_o be_v so_o or_o no_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o which_o they_o be_v not_o competent_a judge_n it_o lie_v out_o of_o their_o reach_n and_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n who_o only_o be_v the_o searcher_n of_o heart_n therefore_o whatever_o they_o may_v fear_v or_o suspect_v yet_o they_o shall_v forbear_v either_o to_o pronounce_v or_o insinuate_v any_o such_o hard_a thing_n against_o their_o brethren_n by_o which_o they_o become_v judge_n of_o evil_a thought_n which_o if_o they_o do_v not_o they_o stir_v up_o strife_n and_o violate_v peace_n by_o cause_v unquietness_n and_o disorder_n in_o the_o church_n and_o destroy_v charity_n weaken_v yea_o wound_v the_o very_a spirit_n of_o the_o church_n communion_n which_o without_o doubt_n be_v schism_n though_o it_o shall_v never_o proceed_v to_o actual_a separation_n this_o mingle_n of_o man_n passion_n and_o unchristian_a censure_n and_o insinuation_n with_o their_o argument_n hinder_v the_o due_a operation_n of_o their_o argument_n upon_o their_o antagonist_n mind_n though_o they_o shall_v have_v truth_n on_o their_o side_n for_o the_o wrath_n of_o man_n work_v not_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n but_o hinder_v it_o jam._n 1.20_o whereas_o though_o man_n do_v differ_v yet_o so_o long_o as_o they_o propose_v and_o reply_v one_o to_o another_o no_v otherwise_o than_o as_o suppose_v both_o side_n to_o be_v only_o in_o the_o search_n of_o truth_n they_o may_v live_v love_o and_o peaceable_o together_o and_o enjoy_v edify_v and_o comfortable_a communion_n one_o with_o another_o their_o difference_n in_o judgement_n notwithstanding_o 3._o there_o be_v a_o division_n and_o consequent_o a_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n of_o a_o high_a nature_n than_o the_o former_a and_o that_o be_v when_o the_o person_n that_o divide_v or_o cause_n division_n in_o the_o church_n unnecessary_o gather_v into_o a_o party_n and_o do_v after_o a_o sort_n unite_v and_o combine_v themselves_o together_o the_o more_o public_o and_o avowed_o to_o maintain_v and_o carry_v on_o the_o cause_n they_o have_v espouse_v in_o opposition_n to_o their_o brethren_n and_o industrious_o labour_v to_o increase_v their_o number_n as_o hope_v thereby_o in_o time_n to_o be_v able_a to_o bring_v their_o opposite_n to_o submit_v to_o they_o and_o to_o give_v up_o their_o cause_n now_o if_o the_o thing_n or_o thing_n they_o after_o this_o manner_n contend_v for_o shall_v be_v unprofitable_a for_o the_o church_n in_o case_n they_o shall_v obtain_v or_o of_o so_o little_a use_n or_o benefit_n as_o that_o it_o can_v never_o reasonable_o be_v expect_v that_o it_o shall_v countervail_v the_o hurt_n that_o be_v or_o will_v be_v do_v to_o the_o church_n to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o cause_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o world_n and_o to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n in_o general_a by_o be_v obtain_v in_o such_o a_o way_n it_o will_v be_v a_o most_o grievous_a schism_n thus_o to_o divide_v and_o imbroil_v the_o church_n upon_o so_o mean_v a_o account_n a_o division_n or_o schism_n of_o this_o nature_n be_v term_v faction_n which_o be_v a_o side_v or_o make_v of_o party_n in_o the_o church_n and_o of_o this_o nature_n in_o some_o sort_n be_v the_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n for_o their_o division_n be_v factious_a division_n for_o they_o proceed_v to_o make_v of_o party_n their_o crime_n in_o this_o charge_v upon_o they_o by_o st._n paul_n be_v term_v division_n in_o our_o bibles_n but_o the_o word_n be_v faction_n in_o the_o margin_n 1_o cor._n 3.3_o and_o part_n of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n render_v sedition_n in_o our_o translation_n be_v division_n or_o faction_n in_o the_o margin_n gal._n 5.20_o this_o sort_n of_o division_n which_o be_v accompany_v with_o faction_n or_o make_v of_o party_n be_v more_o than_o be_v find_v in_o some_o division_n which_o yet_o be_v sinful_a now_o when_o a_o schism_n grow_v up_o to_o this_o height_n to_o a_o combine_a strength_n it_o be_v much_o worse_a than_o while_o it_o be_v act_v only_o by_o a_o few_o apart_o and_o in_o a_o more_o private_a way_n and_o less_o take_v notice_n of_o because_o then_o there_o be_v more_o of_o contempt_n in_o it_o and_o more_o be_v corrupt_v by_o it_o and_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o community_n more_o disturb_v and_o because_o usual_o by_o endeavour_n of_o increase_v the_o party_n much_o more_o evil_a be_v perpetrate_v by_o slander_n naughty_a insinuation_n and_o suggestion_n against_o those_o they_o divide_v from_o and_o combine_v against_o than_o be_v find_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o division_n at_o first_o or_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o error_n on_o which_o the_o division_n first_o begin_v this_o factious_a division_n be_v likewise_o aggravate_v further_o when_o it_o partake_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o sedition_n and_o we_o see_v in_o the_o forecited_n place_n gal._n 5._o the_o same_o word_n signify_v division_n faction_n and_o sedition_n now_o sedition_n i_o conceive_v be_v a_o division_n accompany_v with_o a_o combination_n of_o man_n against_o the_o government_n either_o of_o church_n or_o state_n under_o which_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n have_v set_v they_o it_o be_v their_o act_v thing_n contrary_a to_o that_o government_n far_o than_o the_o necessity_n of_o not_o sin_v against_o god_n do_v oblige_v they_o to_o the_o disturb_v of_o the_o public_a peace_n thereby_o or_o it_o may_v be_v so_o perhaps_o by_o seek_v to_o alter_v any_o thing_n amiss_o or_o inconvenient_a in_o the_o government_n in_o a_o undue_a way_n that_o be_v by_o act_v out_o of_o their_o sphere_n or_o the_o place_n or_o rank_n in_o which_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n have_v set_v they_o their_o go_v beyond_o their_o bound_n in_o it_o
or_o their_o do_n more_o to_o accomplish_v it_o than_o the_o law_n or_o government_n under_o which_o they_o be_v allow_v they_o for_o otherwise_o it_o be_v not_o seditious_a i_o conceive_v for_o man_n to_o endeavour_v to_o get_v any_o thing_n amiss_o in_o the_o government_n to_o be_v alter_v in_o a_o regular_a way_n that_o be_v in_o such_o a_o way_n as_o the_o government_n or_o public_a constitution_n allow_v i_o need_v not_o say_v how_o much_o the_o two_o bond_n the_o one_o of_o peace_n the_o other_o of_o charity_n be_v break_v by_o this_o sort_n of_o division_n which_o be_v accompany_v either_o with_o faction_n or_o sedition_n nor_o how_o great_a the_o schism_n be_v that_o be_v make_v thereby_o but_o this_o be_v certain_a that_o a_o division_n of_o this_o kind_n can_v be_v without_o much_o envy_v and_o strife_n and_o where_o these_o be_v there_o be_v confusion_n and_o every_o evil_a work_n as_o st._n james_n have_v tell_v we_o chap._n 3.16_o 4._o another_o sort_n of_o division_n in_o the_o church_n be_v that_o which_o be_v make_v by_o a_o unjust_a separation_n of_o one_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n from_o another_o in_o the_o business_n of_o their_o communion_n in_o their_o solemn_a worship_n and_o this_o be_v a_o division_n of_o a_o very_a high_a nature_n indeed_o especial_o when_o it_o be_v accompany_v with_o the_o three_o sort_n of_o division_n before_o insist_v on_o for_o if_o such_o a_o division_n be_v unjust_o make_v it_o be_v point_v blank_a contrary_n to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o unity_n of_o communion_n among_o christian_n which_o be_v teach_v and_o practise_v by_o man_n inspire_v by_o the_o spirit_n in_o reference_n both_o to_o solemn_a worship_n and_o christian_a fellowship_n as_o have_v be_v former_o explain_v by_o such_o a_o division_n the_o church_n peace_n be_v break_v with_o a_o high_a hand_n great_a offence_n be_v thereby_o take_v at_o other_o and_o cause_n of_o offence_n give_v to_o they_o and_o a_o wide_a gap_n open_v for_o debate_n strife_n contention_n and_o confusion_n to_o enter_v in_o to_o a_o dreadful_a destruction_n of_o charity_n the_o spirit_n and_o life_n of_o christianity_n without_o which_o faith_n itself_o be_v dead_a and_o all_o other_o religious_a performance_n little_o available_a it_o concern_v we_o great_o therefore_o and_o some_o man_n more_o especial_o very_o diligent_o to_o inquire_v how_o far_o the_o division_n and_o separation_n that_o do_v abound_v in_o our_o day_n and_o in_o this_o nation_n be_v unjust_o or_o just_o make_v to_o do_v which_o i_o do_v not_o know_v a_o more_o compendious_a way_n than_o to_o inquire_v into_o the_o nature_n of_o our_o national_a constitution_n about_o god_n public_a worship_n and_o the_o power_n of_o give_v be_v to_o it_o and_o how_o far_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o observe_v it_o that_o such_o national_a constitution_n as_o have_v be_v make_v in_o several_a nation_n for_o reformation_n from_o popery_n and_o for_o the_o establish_n of_o the_o reform_a religion_n and_o worship_n in_o the_o room_n of_o it_o since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reformation_n have_v be_v so_o far_o approve_v of_o by_o god_n as_o that_o he_o do_v reckon_v and_o esteem_v those_o nation_n his_o kingdom_n upon_o that_o account_n i_o have_v find_v as_o i_o conceive_v in_o our_o twelve_o inquiry_n which_o with_o what_o else_o be_v there_o produce_v and_o argue_v for_o the_o usefulness_n of_o such_o national_a constitution_n i_o take_v to_o be_v ground_n sufficient_a to_o authorise_v a_o national_a authority_n in_o such_o a_o undertake_n now_o when_o ever_o the_o form_n of_o such_o national_a constitution_n be_v undertake_v by_o they_o to_o who_o it_o do_v belong_v they_o must_v needs_o find_v that_o though_o the_o essential_o and_o substance_n of_o all_o divine_a worship_n be_v express_o and_o particular_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n yet_o there_o be_v several_a circumstance_n and_o accident_n of_o worship_n which_o pertain_v to_o the_o external_a administration_n of_o the_o substance_n which_o be_v not_o otherwise_o determine_v in_o scripture_n than_o by_o general_a rule_n as_o that_o edification_n order_n and_o decency_n be_v always_o observe_v in_o the_o choice_n of_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v not_o particular_o determine_v and_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n such_o be_v those_o i_o instance_a in_o in_o another_o of_o our_o inquiry_n concern_v prayer_n though_o all_o the_o substantial_a part_n of_o it_o be_v determine_v in_o scripture_n yet_o we_o be_v not_o where_o limit_v to_o pray_v with_o a_o set_a form_n nor_o without_o one_o to_o use_v or_o not_o to_o use_v book-prayer_n to_o kneel_v or_o to_o stand_v in_o pray_v nor_o direct_v whether_o in_o the_o public_a worship_n there_o shall_v be_v several_a distinct_a and_o short_a prayer_n use_v for_o several_a thing_n or_o whether_o all_o prayer_n matter_n fit_a for_o a_o public_a assembly_n shall_v be_v comprise_v in_o one_o or_o more_o long_a prayer_n and_o the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v touch_v several_a external_a circumstance_n that_o be_v to_o be_v use_v in_o all_o other_o part_n of_o public_a worship_n this_o be_v the_o case_n it_o will_v necessary_o fall_v under_o the_o consideration_n of_o those_o who_o be_v employ_v in_o the_o form_n a_o public_a constitution_n for_o worship_n which_o of_o these_o will_v tend_v most_o to_o the_o peace_n unity_n and_o edisication_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o decency_n and_o order_n whether_o to_o leave_v all_o aside_o termine_v circumstance_n of_o worship_n to_o every_o one_o choice_n who_o be_v to_o administer_v the_o holy_a thing_n or_o in_o these_o thing_n to_o choose_v for_o they_o and_o to_o determine_v by_o a_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n what_o shall_v be_v observe_v suppose_v we_o then_o that_o upon_o serious_a consideration_n and_o consultation_n they_o come_v to_o be_v full_o persuade_v in_o their_o own_o mind_n that_o to_o leave_v all_o both_o minister_n and_o people_n to_o their_o own_o choice_n in_o such_o undetermined_a circumstance_n in_o god_n public_a worship_n will_v tend_v to_o great_a division_n disorder_n and_o confusion_n as_o it_o do_v in_o the_o late_a time_n of_o general_a liberty_n and_o that_o then_o we_o shall_v have_v one_o oppose_v another_o in_o their_o different_a way_n and_o make_v of_o party_n one_o against_o another_o to_o endless_a branglement_n and_o to_o the_o eat_v out_o the_o heart_n and_o life_n of_o true_a religion_n and_o suppose_v also_o that_o upon_o such_o consideration_n as_o these_o they_o come_v to_o a_o resolution_n to_o determine_v all_o undetermined_a circumstance_n of_o public_a worship_n by_o the_o use_n of_o a_o liturgy_n except_o only_o what_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v in_o the_o pulpit_n as_o that_o which_o tend_v most_o in_o their_o judgement_n to_o peace_n unity_n edification_n order_n and_o decency_n and_o when_o they_o have_v go_v thus_o far_o in_o general_n they_o will_v necessary_o be_v lead_v to_o proceed_v in_o the_o next_o place_n to_o the_o choice_n of_o particular_a circumstance_n of_o administration_n of_o the_o several_a part_n of_o public_a worship_n in_o which_o it_o be_v to_o be_v presume_v they_o govern_v themselves_o according_a to_o the_o best_a of_o their_o understanding_n by_o those_o general_a rule_n which_o direct_v all_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v for_o edification_n order_n and_o decency_n and_o when_o they_o have_v do_v so_o and_o bring_v thing_n to_o the_o best_a issue_n they_o can_v yet_o consider_v that_o all_o man_n and_o the_o best_a of_o man_n be_v fallible_a it_o be_v not_o unlikely_a but_o that_o they_o may_v be_v mistake_v in_o some_o thing_n and_o that_o such_o and_o such_o a_o circumstance_n or_o mode_n of_o administration_n of_o worship_n will_v have_v better_o and_o more_o full_o agree_v with_o the_o general_a rule_n than_o those_o they_o have_v make_v choice_n of_o but_o yet_o if_o their_o fail_n and_o and_o mistake_v therein_o do_v not_o extend_v to_o the_o corrupt_a of_o god_n worship_n in_o the_o essence_n or_o substance_n of_o it_o but_o only_o to_o the_o order_n of_o some_o less_o useful_a circumstance_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o external_a manner_n of_o performance_n of_o that_o worship_n there_o will_v be_v no_o just_a cause_n of_o separate_n from_o communion_n in_o it_o upon_o that_o account_n for_o those_o who_o separate_v from_o communion_n in_o the_o worship_n which_o be_v every_o lord_n day_n perform_v in_o our_o parochial_a assembly_n according_a to_o our_o liturgy_n be_v oblige_v to_o prove_v one_o of_o these_o two_o thing_n against_o it_o if_o they_o will_v justify_v their_o separation_n from_o it_o either_o first_o that_o the_o worship_n be_v corrupt_a in_o the_o essence_n or_o substance_n of_o it_o or_o second_o that_o the_o fault_n or_o defect_n in_o the_o external_n manner_n of_o performance_n of_o it_o be_v such_o as_o do_v fall_v short_a of_o and_o
defeat_v the_o end_n for_o which_o a_o external_a way_n and_o manner_n of_o perform_v public_a worship_n shall_v serve_v and_o be_v appoint_v if_o they_o will_v prove_v such_o worship_n corrupt_a in_o the_o essence_n or_o substance_n of_o it_o they_o must_v prove_v that_o it_o be_v so_o either_o in_o the_o object_n of_o worship_n or_o in_o the_o subject_a matter_n of_o it_o for_o in_o those_o two_o the_o essence_n or_o substance_n of_o worship_n do_v consist_v to_o prove_v it_o corrupt_v in_o reference_n to_o the_o object_n of_o worship_n they_o must_v prove_v that_o the_o worship_n be_v direct_v to_o some_o creature_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o only_a true_a god_n or_o by_o some_o mediator_n other_o than_o christ_n jesus_n but_o this_o they_o will_v not_o pretend_v to_o do_v if_o they_o will_v prove_v it_o corrupt_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o subject_a matter_n of_o it_o they_o must_v prove_v that_o the_o prayer_n which_o be_v make_v or_o the_o matter_n for_o which_o praise_n be_v give_v to_o almighty_a god_n be_v not_o prayer_n matter_n or_o thanksgiving_n matter_n or_o that_o some_o other_o part_n of_o worship_n be_v use_v as_o of_o divine_a institution_n which_o be_v not_o such_o but_o now_o none_o of_o these_o thing_n can_v be_v prove_v against_o the_o liturgy_n for_o no_o other_o thing_n be_v therein_o pray_v for_o or_o thanks_o give_v to_o god_n for_o but_o such_o as_o the_o dissenter_n themselves_o do_v may_v or_o aught_o to_o pray_v for_o or_o praise_n god_n for_o nor_o any_o thing_n else_o observe_v as_o a_o ordinance_n of_o god_n but_o what_o they_o themselves_o do_v own_o to_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n such_o as_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n so_o that_o the_o whole_a of_o the_o worship_n be_v pure_a and_o uncorrupt_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o essence_n of_o it_o 2._o if_o then_o they_o will_v prove_v any_o thing_n to_o purpose_n they_o must_v prove_v that_o the_o fault_n and_o defect_n in_o the_o external_a manner_n of_o perform_v the_o say_a worship_n be_v such_o as_o cause_v it_o to_o fall_v short_a of_o and_o do_v defeat_v the_o end_n and_o use_v for_o which_o a_o external_a administration_n of_o public_a worship_n serve_v and_o be_v appoint_v now_o the_o end_n and_o use_v of_o the_o best_a external_a mode_n of_o worship_n be_v edification_n that_o be_v it_o serve_v to_o convey_v the_o object_n and_o subject_a matter_n of_o worship_n to_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o worshipper_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v suitable_o affect_v and_o this_o end_n of_o worship_n be_v defeat_v when_o the_o worship_n be_v perform_v in_o a_o language_n which_o the_o people_n do_v not_o understand_v or_o in_o such_o word_n and_o phrase_n as_o be_v insignificant_a of_o or_o unsuitable_a to_o the_o part_n of_o worship_n to_o which_o they_o be_v apply_v but_o neither_o of_o these_o thing_n can_v be_v charge_v upon_o the_o worship_n perform_v according_a to_o the_o liturgy_n for_o the_o worship_n be_v perform_v in_o a_o language_n understand_v by_o all_o the_o people_n and_o in_o word_n and_o phrase_n competent_o significant_a and_o expressive_a of_o and_o suitable_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o subject_a matter_n of_o the_o worship_n in_o its_o several_a part_n and_o so_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o general_a rule_n for_o administration_n of_o public_a worship_n which_o the_o apostle_n term_n to_o be_v utter_v by_o the_o tongue_n word_n easy_a to_o be_v understand_v 1_o cor._n 14._o by_o it_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n may_v be_v guide_v and_o conduct_v from_o one_o part_n of_o worship_n to_o another_o and_o be_v affect_v according_a to_o the_o different_a nature_n of_o the_o several_a part_n of_o which_o the_o whole_a worship_n do_v consist_v which_o be_v the_o proper_a end_n and_o use_v of_o a_o external_a form_n of_o administration_n of_o public_a worship_n object_n but_o perhaps_o it_o will_v be_v say_v that_o the_o worship_n perform_v according_a to_o the_o liturgy_n do_v not_o so_o adequate_o and_o full_o agree_v with_o the_o rule_n and_o end_n of_o the_o external_a administration_n of_o worship_n in_o some_o respect_n as_o it_o may_v have_v be_v make_v to_o do_v or_o as_o some_o other_o do_v to_o which_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o the_o external_a manner_n of_o worship_n according_a to_o the_o liturgy_n be_v the_o best_a or_o no_o in_o all_o respect_n but_o suppose_v it_o shall_v not_o and_o suppose_v that_o some_o external_a circumstance_n order_v by_o it_o shall_v be_v or_o make_v it_o to_o be_v less_o useful_a than_o it_o may_v have_v be_v or_o than_o some_o other_o be_v yet_o so_o long_o as_o they_o do_v but_o make_v it_o less_o useful_a to_o the_o end_n for_o which_o it_o serve_v but_o do_v not_o defeat_v it_o nor_o be_v destructive_a of_o it_o nor_o of_o the_o worship_n itself_o but_o that_o it_o remain_v competent_o useful_a to_o its_o proper_a end_n though_o comparative_o but_o in_o a_o inferior_a degree_n suppose_v i_o say_v that_o all_o this_o shall_v be_v grant_v for_o argument_n sake_n and_o we_o shall_v proceed_v with_o they_o upon_o their_o own_o term_n yet_o this_o will_v be_v no_o sufficient_a cause_n of_o refuse_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n in_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n thus_o administer_v 1._o for_o first_o if_o it_o be_v it_o can_v scarce_o be_v lawful_a to_o hold_v communion_n with_o any_o particular_a church_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n because_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a but_o that_o more_o or_o less_o of_o such_o circumstance_n of_o worship_n as_o be_v less_o useful_a be_v use_v in_o all_o church_n in_o the_o world_n for_o consider_v the_o fallibility_n of_o all_o man_n and_o their_o know_v but_o in_o part_n at_o best_a i_o think_v it_o will_v be_v no_o breach_n of_o charity_n to_o suppose_v that_o there_o be_v no_o church_n constitution_n for_o worship_n in_o all_o the_o world_n nor_o perhaps_o any_o one_o way_n of_o external_a administration_n of_o holy_a thing_n humane_o perform_v but_o what_o be_v accompany_v with_o circumstantial_a defect_n more_o or_o less_o such_o i_o mean_v as_o be_v less_o useful_a than_o other_o that_o may_v be_v make_v use_n of_o be_v it_o not_o for_o man_n imperfection_n that_o have_v the_o make_n or_o manage_v of_o they_o so_o that_o the_o notion_n or_o opinion_n that_o circumstantial_a defect_n in_o the_o external_a manner_n of_o worship_n be_v a_o just_a ground_n of_o separation_n from_o it_o be_v destructive_a of_o catholic_n communion_n itself_o 2._o none_o account_v themselves_o guilty_a of_o or_o defile_v by_o the_o defect_n that_o be_v in_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o minister_n pray_v in_o the_o pulpit_n so_o long_o as_o the_o matter_n be_v good_a and_o there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n in_o reference_n to_o circumstantial_a defect_n in_o prayer_n make_v by_o the_o liturgy_n we_o can_v hardly_o say_v that_o any_o public_a prayer_n be_v so_o free_a from_o all_o defect_n but_o either_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o method_n or_o manner_n of_o express_v the_o matter_n it_o may_v possible_o be_v better_a do_v than_o usual_o it_o be_v do_v even_o by_o good_a man_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o very_a unreasonable_a thing_n to_o make_v circumstantial_a defect_n in_o the_o manner_n of_o pray_v a_o ground_n of_o separation_n from_o communion_n in_o prayer_n 3._o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o separate_v from_o communion_n in_o worship_n only_o because_o less_o useful_o administer_v then_o though_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o liturgy_n in_o the_o case_n yet_o where_o one_o minister_n do_v but_o excel_v another_o in_o his_o ministration_n it_o will_v be_v lawful_a to_o separate_v from_o that_o congregation_n where_o the_o worship_n or_o other_o ministration_n be_v less_o useful_o perform_v and_o in_o a_o manner_n inferior_a to_o what_o be_v do_v by_o another_o in_o another_o place_n but_o no_o man_n will_v be_v so_o absurd_a as_o to_o say_v this_o may_v be_v practise_v for_o if_o it_o may_v there_o will_v be_v no_o end_n of_o separation_n but_o a_o door_n will_v be_v open_v to_o all_o confusion_n and_o people_n must_v be_v separate_v as_o often_o as_o they_o conceive_v they_o have_v find_v one_o minister_n of_o a_o congregation_n to_o excel_v another_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o ministration_n and_o if_o separation_n may_v not_o be_v practise_v upon_o this_o account_n than_o it_o can_v be_v due_o practise_v for_o that_o reason_n that_o the_o manner_n of_o worship_n perform_v according_a to_o the_o liturgy_n be_v less_o useful_a and_o less_o edify_a than_o that_o which_o be_v or_o may_v be_v do_v after_o another_o manner_n 4_o it_o be_v not_o the_o external_a manner_n of_o worship_n but_o the_o essential_a matter_n that_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o christian_n agreement_n in_o one_o catholic_n communion_n in_o worship_n throughout_o the_o world_n in_o the_o
but_o quaker_n there_o be_v other_o who_o frame_n to_o themselves_o other_o reason_n of_o separation_n from_o parochial_a communion_n in_o worship_n beside_o its_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o liturgy_n as_o namely_o because_o those_o congregation_n be_v not_o as_o they_o pretend_v constitute_v of_o visible_a saint_n nor_o by_o a_o church_n covenant_n who_o these_o be_v be_v well_o know_v for_o who_o sake_n several_a of_o my_o former_a inquiry_n be_v make_v in_o which_o there_o be_v such_o thing_n produce_v from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o may_v i_o suppose_v be_v sufficient_a to_o satisfy_v their_o reason_n if_o not_o their_o prejudice_n touch_v their_o mistake_n in_o these_o opinion_n as_o for_o their_o exception_n against_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n by_o bishop_n as_o diocesan_n how_o they_o will_v make_v communion_n with_o the_o particular_a congregation_n under_o their_o jurisdiction_n unlawful_a upon_o that_o account_n i_o understand_v not_o unless_o they_o think_v the_o minister_n of_o those_o congregation_n by_o who_o the_o ordinance_n be_v administer_v to_o be_v no_o true_a minister_n because_o episcopal_o ordain_v and_o not_o by_o presbyter_n and_o if_o this_o shall_v be_v their_o scruple_n they_o may_v easy_o receive_v satisfaction_n by_o consider_v that_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v presbyter_n before_o they_o be_v bishop_n and_o therefore_o must_v needs_o remain_v so_o after_o for_o they_o be_v not_o devest_v of_o any_o ministerial_a power_n or_o authority_n by_o be_v make_v bishop_n but_o only_o invest_v with_o a_o superaddition_n of_o authority_n and_o power_n they_o have_v not_o before_o so_o that_o they_o who_o be_v ordain_v by_o they_o be_v ordain_v by_o a_o presbyterial_a authority_n and_o more_o and_o with_o this_o the_o old_a nonconformist_n satisfy_v themselves_o touch_v the_o validity_n of_o their_o ministerial_a authority_n receive_v by_o ordination_n from_o the_o bishop_n that_o then_o be_v some_o again_o dislike_v parochial_a communion_n because_o the_o civil_a power_n be_v so_o much_o concern_v as_o it_o be_v in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n relate_v to_o it_o one_o way_n or_o other_o and_o for_o that_o all_o such_o thing_n be_v not_o leave_v whole_o to_o the_o order_n of_o ecclesiastical_a ruler_n as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o long_o after_o but_o there_o be_v not_o the_o same_o reason_n why_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o leave_v now_o as_o there_o be_v why_o they_o be_v so_o then_o the_o reason_n why_o they_o be_v whole_o leave_v then_o to_o the_o order_n of_o a_o ecclesiastical_a power_n be_v because_o there_o be_v no_o civil_a power_n as_o christian_a then_o in_o be_v so_o that_o they_o can_v not_o promote_v christianity_n better_o any_o other_o way_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o now_o for_o it_o be_v show_v in_o our_o last_o former_a inquiry_n but_o one_o that_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n in_o a_o christian_a kingdom_n or_o state_n may_v better_o be_v provide_v for_o and_o promote_v by_o a_o national_a constitution_n than_o they_o can_v be_v without_o it_o and_o that_o therefore_o thing_n of_o this_o nature_n be_v not_o to_o be_v order_v as_o if_o we_o be_v still_o in_o a_o pagan_a kingdom_n when_o we_o be_v not_o for_o where_o the_o reason_n of_o thing_n be_v alter_v it_o be_v but_o reasonable_a and_o fit_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o suitable_a alteration_n in_o the_o thing_n themselves_o thus_o the_o gesture_n of_o stand_v with_o loin_n gird_v and_o a_o staff_n in_o the_o hand_n appoint_v to_o be_v use_v in_o eat_v the_o passover_n at_o the_o first_o institution_n of_o it_o for_o that_o it_o be_v then_o to_o be_v eat_v in_o haste_n be_v afterward_o alter_v to_o another_o gesture_n by_o the_o church_n when_o that_o circumstance_n of_o eat_v in_o haste_n cease_v and_o our_o saviour_n himself_o do_v eat_v it_o in_o that_o posture_n to_o which_o the_o church_n have_v change_v it_o which_o be_v a_o consideration_n of_o very_a great_a weight_n in_o reference_n to_o this_o and_o some_o other_o case_n and_o the_o obligation_n of_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n cease_v upon_o the_o same_o ground_n when_o the_o substance_n be_v come_v which_o have_v be_v prefigure_v by_o ceremonial_a rite_n and_o the_o like_a may_v be_v observe_v touch_v the_o discontinuance_n and_o disuse_n of_o anoint_v the_o sick_a wash_v disciple_n foot_n and_o the_o kiss_n of_o charity_n and_o some_o other_o thing_n which_o be_v oblige_v until_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o obligation_n cease_v but_o although_o the_o civil_a power_n do_v concern_v itself_o by_o a_o national_a constitution_n to_o order_n and_o direct_v in_o thing_n appertain_v to_o the_o church_n for_o the_o promote_a of_o religion_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o this_o without_o the_o advice_n and_o assistance_n of_o those_o that_o be_v officer_n and_o bear_v rule_n in_o the_o church_n and_o when_o the_o civil_a power_n have_v go_v as_o far_o as_o they_o think_v fit_a in_o order_v and_o direct_v by_o ecclesiastical_a advice_n and_o assistance_n yet_o they_o do_v not_o act_v any_o thing_n themselves_o peculiar_a to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n but_o leave_v all_o such_o thing_n whole_o to_o they_o who_o be_v invest_v with_o ministerial_a authority_n reserve_v only_o to_o themselves_o a_o power_n os_fw-la restrain_v such_o man_n from_o a_o undue_a exercise_n of_o their_o office_n tend_v to_o public_a disturbance_n and_o thus_o i_o have_v endeavour_v to_o satisfy_v the_o dissenter_n that_o there_o be_v no_o sufficient_a reason_n or_o cause_n for_o they_o to_o separate_v from_o the_o public_a worship_n of_o our_o parochial_a assemble_v and_o that_o their_o pretence_n for_o their_o do_v so_o when_o narrow_o look_v into_o be_v find_v to_o have_v nothing_o of_o substance_n in_o they_o sufficient_a to_o bear_v they_o out_o in_o it_o and_o if_o i_o be_o not_o mistake_v in_o my_o allegation_n and_o reason_n i_o can_v discern_v how_o their_o separation_n can_v possible_o be_v defend_v from_o be_v a_o unlawful_a schism_n and_o if_o it_o be_v i_o be_o sure_a they_o have_v upon_o many_o account_v great_a reason_n to_o desist_v from_o engage_v far_o in_o it_o query_n xv._o svpposing_a thing_n touch_v visible_a church-membership_n and_o communion_n to_o be_v as_o they_o have_v be_v represent_v in_o our_o former_a inquiry_n yet_o how_o do_v they_o tend_v to_o lessen_v our_o church_n division_n the_o answer_n to_o which_o be_v that_o if_o the_o matter_n of_o our_o inquiry_n be_v as_o they_o have_v be_v represent_v than_o they_o tend_v to_o lessen_v our_o church-division_n by_o remove_v and_o take_v away_o the_o very_a foundation_n on_o which_o they_o and_o our_o church-separation_n be_v in_o great_a part_n at_o least_o build_v for_o i_o do_v not_o know_v any_o one_o of_o the_o different_a party_n among_o the_o protestant_a dissenter_n except_o those_o call_v presbyterian_a who_o do_v not_o find_v their_o separation_n from_o our_o parish_n church_n at_o least_o principal_o upon_o this_o supposition_n that_o they_o be_v not_o constitute_v according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o why_o not_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o because_o as_o they_o say_v they_o be_v not_o constitute_v ol_n gospel_n matter_n that_o be_v not_o of_o visible_a saint_n but_o of_o such_o as_o for_o a_o great_a part_n of_o they_o at_o least_o be_v never_o due_o repute_v to_o be_v regenerate_v or_o to_o be_v of_o the_o invisible_a church_n and_o their_o meaning_n be_v as_o i_o collect_v both_o from_o their_o write_n and_o converse_n that_o they_o be_v not_o at_o first_o nor_o since_o constitute_v of_o such_o particular_a member_n only_o as_o at_o the_o time_n of_o such_o their_o constitution_n have_v a_o probable_a appearance_n of_o regeneration_n but_o of_o all_o baptize_v person_n however_o they_o prove_v good_a or_o bad_a and_o without_o any_o other_o probation_n or_o discrimination_n now_o if_o those_o thing_n be_v true_a which_o have_v be_v endeavour_v to_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v so_o in_o the_o management_n of_o the_o former_a inquiry_n then_o this_o ground_n on_o which_o they_o build_v their_o separation_n be_v altogether_o unsound_a and_o such_o as_o have_v no_o firmness_n or_o substance_n in_o it_o but_o be_v only_o imaginary_a for_o our_o parish_n congregation_n be_v constitute_v of_o person_n visible_o in_o covenant_n with_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n by_o be_v baptize_v in_o their_o name_n and_o thereby_o engage_v to_o be_v they_o to_o worship_n and_o serve_v the_o father_n by_o the_o son_n through_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o of_o such_o and_o no_o other_o be_v the_o church_n plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n constitute_v and_o this_o covenant_n be_v then_o and_o so_o be_v now_o the_o visible_a formal_a difference_n between_o those_o of_o the_o visible_a
our_o saviour_n or_o his_o apostle_n or_o any_o other_o holy_a man_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n of_o christianity_n do_v ever_o decline_v the_o public_a worship_n or_o the_o use_n of_o god_n ordinance_n in_o such_o assembly_n where_o bad_a man_n as_o well_o as_o good_a have_v communion_n in_o they_o such_o a_o mixture_n of_o bad_a with_o good_a can_v hinder_v good_a man_n from_o any_o growth_n in_o grace_n by_o those_o ordinance_n if_o they_o have_v but_o a_o due_a care_n to_o make_v the_o best_a improvement_n of_o they_o they_o can_v and_o therefore_o there_o can_v be_v no_o need_n of_o separate_n and_o new_a associate_a in_o reference_n to_o man_n own_o growth_n in_o grace_n though_o we_o shall_v suppose_v it_o possible_a they_o can_v be_v sure_a it_o be_v simple_o lawful_a which_o make_v such_o separation_n on_o the_o one_o have_v and_o associate_a on_o the_o other_o the_o more_o inexcusable_a when_o it_o cause_v so_o much_o hurt_v to_o the_o church_n in_o general_n and_o such_o obstruction_n to_o the_o success_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o world_n as_o have_v be_v show_v it_o do_v and_o will_v do_v more_o if_o it_o shall_v more_o general_o prevail_v the_o few_o name_n in_o the_o church_n of_o sardis_n do_v not_o defile_v their_o garment_n by_o communicate_v with_o the_o great_a number_n of_o those_o that_o have_v nor_o do_v they_o thereby_o deprive_v themselves_o of_o the_o benefit_n which_o christ_n design_v they_o by_o his_o ordinance_n either_o by_o have_v their_o mind_n discompose_v by_o such_o a_o mixture_n of_o communicant_n or_o otherwise_o for_o if_o they_o have_v we_o can_v think_v that_o our_o saviour_n who_o walk_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o golden_a candlestick_n search_v the_o reins_o and_o the_o heart_n to_o give_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o their_o work_n will_v have_v applaud_v they_o as_o he_o do_v with_o promise_n of_o great_a reward_n say_v they_o shall_v walk_v with_o i_o in_o white_a for_o they_o be_v worthy_a rev_n 3.4_o and_o now_o for_o a_o conclusion_n that_o no_o man_n may_v take_v offence_n at_o the_o discourse_n in_o these_o paper_n nor_o at_o i_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o it_o i_o must_v inform_v those_o that_o be_v most_o likely_a to_o do_v so_o of_o two_o thing_n first_o that_o if_o i_o have_v discern_v that_o what_o be_v herein_o plead_v have_v have_v no_o better_a foundation_n than_o some_o few_o obscure_a text_n of_o scripture_n of_o dubious_a and_o uncertain_a interpretation_n i_o shall_v not_o thus_o far_o have_v engage_v in_o it_o as_o i_o have_v do_v but_o if_o it_o shall_v appear_v to_o other_o as_o it_o do_v to_o i_o that_o i_o have_v the_o general_a stream_n of_o the_o scripture_n on_o my_o side_n herein_o both_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o of_o the_o new_a both_o as_o to_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n and_o matter_n of_o fact_n i_o hope_v i_o shall_v be_v excuse_v for_o make_v this_o essay_n for_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o those_o that_o most_o need_v it_o second_o that_o i_o take_v the_o scope_n and_o design_n of_o the_o whole_a of_o the_o discourse_n in_o these_o paper_n to_o be_v perfect_o agreeable_a to_o christian_a charity_n as_o tend_v to_o no_o man_n hurt_n but_o to_o the_o general_a good_a of_o all_o sort_n else_o i_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v satisfy_v in_o it_o for_o i_o know_v not_o how_o to_o think_v any_o thing_n orthodox_n in_o divinity_n which_o be_v against_o charity_n now_o if_o the_o extent_n of_o visible_a church-membership_n and_o communion_n plead_v for_o tend_v more_o to_o the_o conversion_n of_o such_o of_o they_o as_o be_v unregenerate_a and_o not_o otherwise_o obnoxious_a to_o excommunication_n than_o the_o exclude_v such_o from_o both_o will_v do_v than_o what_o i_o plead_v for_o be_v great_a charity_n to_o they_o and_o this_o extent_n of_o visible_a church-membership_n and_o communion_n tend_v to_o propagate_v and_o spread_v the_o christian_a religion_n among_o those_o that_o be_v yet_o without_o the_o church_n more_o than_o the_o narrow_a way_n can_v do_v as_o have_v be_v show_v and_o therefore_o its_o matter_n of_o charity_n to_o they_o also_o and_o in_o that_o this_o more_o general_a way_n of_o visible_a church-membership_n and_o communion_n be_v not_o plead_v to_o the_o deny_v the_o usefulness_n of_o excommunication_n in_o reference_n to_o capital_a offender_n but_o the_o contrary_a that_o be_v matter_n of_o charity_n to_o they_o also_o because_o by_o that_o they_o may_v be_v bring_v to_o shame_n and_o so_o unto_o repentance_n when_o they_o see_v all_o sober_a christian_n ashamed_a to_o own_v they_o or_o to_o be_v number_v with_o they_o as_o be_v a_o disgrace_n to_o the_o religion_n they_o profess_v and_o i_o be_o so_o far_o from_o be_v less_o for_o the_o exercise_n of_o church-discipline_n upon_o the_o proper_a object_n of_o it_o than_o our_o dissent_v friend_n be_v that_o i_o think_v it_o a_o piece_n of_o great_a uncharitableness_n towards_o gross_a sinner_n when_o it_o be_v neglect_v by_o they_o to_o who_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o do_v belong_v only_o i_o will_v have_v the_o scripture_n rule_v observe_v in_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o and_o not_o use_v such_o severity_n as_o to_o exclude_v all_o such_o from_o church-communion_n as_o may_v be_v suspect_v to_o be_v unregenerate_a when_o yet_o not_o guilty_a of_o any_o heresy_n scandalous_a crime_n or_o gross_a ignorance_n for_o man_n may_v give_v occasion_n of_o suspicion_n of_o their_o unregeneracy_n by_o such_o sinful_a neglect_n of_o do_v good_a as_o yet_o may_v be_v no_o just_a ground_n of_o excommunication_n neither_o be_v this_o more_o extensive_a way_n of_o visible_a church-membership_n and_o communion_n hurtful_a to_o those_o that_o be_v good_a but_o give_v they_o opportunity_n of_o do_v the_o more_o good_a and_o therefore_o be_v no_o matter_n of_o uncharitableness_n unto_o they_o neither_o for_o this_o will_v not_o hinder_v they_o from_o be_v as_o good_a as_o they_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o be_v if_o nothing_o else_o do_v they_o may_v be_v as_o strict_a as_o they_o will_v in_o reference_n to_o themselves_o and_o they_o will_v not_o be_v at_o the_o less_o but_o the_o more_o liberty_n to_o converse_v with_o the_o best_a man_n for_o their_o own_o improvement_n in_o wisdom_n and_o goodness_n and_o then_o it_o will_v be_v beneficial_a to_o they_o by_o put_v they_o into_o a_o capacity_n and_o give_v they_o a_o opportunity_n of_o do_v more_o good_a than_o otherwise_o they_o can_v for_o while_o good_a man_n do_v not_o separate_v themselves_o from_o formal_a professor_n of_o the_o same_o religion_n nor_o exclude_v they_o from_o communion_n with_o they_o in_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n they_o the_o better_o preserve_v their_o own_o esteem_n among_o they_o and_o the_o esteem_n of_o that_o wherein_o they_o excel_v they_o and_o they_o will_v be_v the_o more_o ready_a to_o hearken_v to_o they_o in_o their_o advice_n and_o counsel_n and_o in_o their_o admonition_n or_o reproof_n and_o the_o soon_o be_v bring_v to_o imitate_v their_o virtue_n whereas_o a_o contrary_a carriage_n produce_v contrary_a effect_n for_o separation_n from_o neighbour_n as_o no_o member_n of_o a_o true_o christian_a church_n when_o yet_o they_o be_v so_o breed_v more_o or_o less_o estrangedness_n between_o they_o and_o that_o beget_v prejudices_fw-la against_o they_o and_o jealousy_n and_o suspicion_n concern_v they_o as_o man_n want_v in_o true_a christian_a charity_n and_o humility_n which_o will_v make_v they_o the_o less_o value_v and_o their_o good_a counsel_n and_o exhortation_n the_o less_o regard_v and_o their_o good_a example_n in_o what_o be_v worthy_a imitation_n the_o less_o take_v with_o and_o the_o less_o gain_v upon_o such_o man_n a_o discourse_n likewise_o which_o evince_v a_o more_o extensive_a visible_a church-membership_n and_o communion_n to_o be_v approve_v of_o by_o god_n than_o these_o dissent_v brethren_n will_v allow_v must_v needs_o be_v matter_n of_o charity_n to_o themselves_o more_o especial_o for_o it_o tend_v to_o rescue_v and_o deliver_v they_o from_o such_o error_n as_o make_v they_o injurious_a to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o world_n and_o what_o good_a man_n be_v there_o that_o will_v not_o be_v glad_a to_o be_v deliver_v from_o such_o apprehension_n as_o make_v he_o troublesome_a even_o to_o good_a man_n themselves_o without_o any_o cause_n and_o from_o such_o opinion_n as_o have_v kindle_v a_o fire_n of_o contention_n and_o discord_n in_o the_o church_n destructive_a of_o that_o christian_a charity_n without_o which_o all_o we_o do_v in_o religion_n will_v signify_v nothing_o it_o be_v certain_o a_o great_a grief_n to_o all_o good_a man_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o bar_n in_o the_o way_n to_o keep_v they_o at_o any_o undue_a distance_n from_o one_o another_o and_o consequent_o it_o must_v be_v very_o grateful_a to_o they_o when_o ever_o it_o be_v remove_v this_o more_o general_a way_n of_o visible_a church-membership_n and_o communion_n be_v then_o more_o useful_a and_o beneficial_a to_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n than_o the_o other_o be_v and_o true_o hurtful_a to_o none_o i_o say_v it_o be_v a_o way_n and_o method_n so_o full_o of_o charity_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o and_o so_o agreeable_a to_o moral_a principle_n of_o wisdom_n and_o goodness_n as_o it_o appear_v to_o be_v will_v commend_v itself_o to_o right_a reason_n and_o to_o that_o natural_a light_n that_o be_v in_o man_n if_o it_o shall_v not_o have_v have_v that_o evidence_n from_o supernatural_a revelation_n to_o back_n and_o authorise_v it_o which_o it_o have_v the_o consideration_n of_o which_o as_o it_o be_v a_o great_a motive_n to_o i_o to_o engage_v in_o the_o defence_n of_o it_o so_o i_o hope_v it_o will_v plead_v my_o excuse_n in_o every_o good_a man_n conscience_n for_o this_o undertake_n for_o indeed_o i_o that_o do_v certain_o know_v my_o own_o mind_n do_v know_v that_o i_o have_v more_o love_n and_o true_a respect_n for_o the_o person_n who_o opinion_n i_o have_v herein_o oppose_v than_o to_o wish_v or_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o tend_v to_o their_o hurt_n and_o now_o methinks_v i_o may_v reasonable_o promise_v this_o to_o myself_o that_o such_o as_o love_v truth_n for_o truth_n sake_n and_o be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o those_o that_o will_v buy_v the_o truth_n but_o not_o sell_v it_o at_o any_o rate_n whatsoever_o shall_v not_o be_v unwilling_a to_o lay_v aside_o all_o prejudice_n and_o self_n interest_n and_o to_o consider_v impartial_o a_o thing_n of_o this_o nature_n by_o what_o hand_n soever_o it_o be_v prepare_v and_o yet_o that_o be_v all_o that_o i_o desire_v from_o they_o for_o who_o sake_n this_o discourse_n be_v compose_v the_o end_n
in_o the_o union_n of_o the_o head_n and_o member_n of_o the_o mystical_a body_n christ_n and_o the_o church_n and_o every_o particular_a member_n of_o it_o for_o they_o be_v unite_v by_o the_o quicken_a power_n and_o influence_n of_o the_o same_o spirit_n which_o abide_v both_o in_o the_o head_n and_o all_o the_o member_n by_o what_o have_v be_v say_v touch_v the_o invisible_a union_n between_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n as_o invisible_a it_o will_v be_v easy_a to_o discern_v whence_o and_o for_o what_o reason_n it_o be_v that_o many_o who_o be_v real_o member_n of_o the_o church_n as_o vible_a be_v yet_o no_o more_o but_o such_o and_o not_o at_o all_o of_o the_o church_n as_o invisible_a and_o it_o be_v for_o want_v of_o such_o a_o inward_a change_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o will_n and_o all_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o soul_n in_o reference_n to_o sin_n and_o duty_n good_a and_o evil_n as_o be_v make_v by_o a_o vigorous_a assent_n of_o the_o mind_n to_o the_o great_a truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o mighty_a motive_n of_o it_o and_o by_o a_o serious_a and_o frequent_a consideration_n of_o they_o and_o how_o a_o man_n be_v own_o self_n be_v concern_v in_o they_o in_o point_n of_o happiness_n or_o misery_n according_a as_o he_o yield_v up_o himself_o to_o be_v govern_v by_o they_o or_o refuse_v to_o do_v so_o i_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o such_o who_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n but_o only_o as_o it_o be_v visible_a may_v yet_o in_o some_o sort_n real_o assent_v unto_o the_o truth_n of_o what_o the_o gospel_n reveal_v touch_v christ_n his_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o saviour_n of_o sinner_n yea_o touch_v the_o necessity_n of_o repentance_n in_o order_n to_o the_o obtain_v the_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a life_n by_o his_o suffering_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o these_o may_v in_o some_o sort_n believe_v and_o undissemble_o profess_v to_o believe_v otherwise_o concern_v the_o christian_a doctrine_n than_o profess_a infidel_n do_v though_o not_o so_o serious_o and_o effectual_o as_o the_o true_o regenerate_v we_o can_v say_v they_o proper_o dissemble_v who_o they_o profess_v to_o believe_v the_o christian_a doctrine_n or_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n we_o can_v say_v their_o word_n be_v know_o contrary_a to_o the_o sentiment_n of_o their_o mind_n and_o thought_n in_o such_o a_o profession_n we_o see_v by_o experience_n that_o some_o seafaring_a man_n otherwise_o vicious_a in_o their_o life_n yet_o when_o take_v captive_a by_o infidel_n will_v endure_v any_o hardship_n rather_o than_o be_v draw_v to_o say_v they_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o christian_a doctrine_n which_o be_v a_o good_a evidence_n that_o they_o do_v in_o some_o sense_n real_o believe_v it_o though_o perhaps_o not_o so_o effectual_o as_o the_o true_o regenerate_v do_v there_o be_v many_o in_o our_o saviour_n day_n of_o who_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o they_o do_v believe_v in_o christ_n who_o faith_n yet_o be_v not_o powerful_a enough_o to_o regenerate_v they_o and_o such_o be_v simon_n magus_n also_o and_o such_o be_v those_o who_o as_o st._n james_n suppose_v have_v faith_n and_o yet_o not_o justify_v by_o it_o it_o be_v alone_o and_o but_o a_o dead_a faith_n and_o such_o faith_n be_v the_o faith_n as_o may_v just_o be_v fear_v of_o many_o at_o this_o day_n who_o be_v christian_n by_o profession_n and_o of_o the_o visible_a church_n nay_o far_o i_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o this_o faith_n of_o they_o in_o conjunction_n with_o some_o external_a motive_n may_v produce_v a_o form_n of_o godliness_n so_o that_o they_o may_v do_v most_o of_o the_o external_a act_n of_o religion_n which_o regenerate_v man_n do_v they_o may_v enter_v into_o covenant_n with_o god_n in_o baptism_n and_o worship_v he_o only_o and_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n they_o may_v open_o own_v the_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o with_o zeal_n dispute_v for_o they_o they_o may_v frequent_v the_o ordinance_n of_o public_a worship_n such_o as_o prayer_n hear_v the_o word_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o may_v observe_v the_o lord_n day_n they_o may_v be_v free_a from_o gross_a and_o scandalous_a sin_n do_v many_o act_n of_o justice_n in_o their_o deal_n with_o man_n and_o give_v alm_n also_o they_o may_v be_v thus_o outward_o righteous_a and_o external_o religious_a and_o yet_o be_v unrenewed_a as_o touch_v the_o inward_a man_n they_o may_v for_o all_o this_o be_v full_a of_o envy_n malice_n hatred_n and_o revengeful_a thought_n of_o emulation_n wrath_n and_o pride_n of_o ambition_n covetousness_n and_o inordinate_a affection_n which_o be_v sin_n of_o that_o sort_n which_o the_o apostle_n call_v work_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o such_o as_o exclude_v man_n out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o while_o they_o remain_v thus_o unrenew_v in_o their_o mind_n and_o will_n what_o ever_o faith_n or_o repenting_n they_o may_v otherwise_o have_v or_o whatever_o their_o outward_a performance_n may_v be_v yet_o they_o fall_v short_a of_o be_v of_o the_o invisible_a church_n for_o want_v of_o that_o inward_a renovation_n that_o invisible_o unite_v man_n to_o christ_n but_o yet_o though_o this_o external_a christianity_n forementioned_a will_v not_o make_v man_n member_n of_o the_o church_n invisible_a yet_o it_o will_v evidence_n and_o declare_v they_o to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n as_o visible_a and_o continue_v they_o in_o it_o for_o it_o be_v in_o some_o sort_n though_o but_o partial_a indeed_o a_o external_a performance_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o baptism_n by_o which_o they_o have_v their_o first_o entrance_n into_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o by_o which_o their_o external_a relation_n to_o god_n in_o a_o religious_a sense_n be_v first_o constitute_v it_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o external_a christianity_n that_o such_o be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o christ_n who_o yet_o be_v but_o unfruitful_a branch_n john_n 15._o devoid_a of_o that_o fruit_n which_o be_v call_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o consist_v of_o those_o internal_a qualification_n describe_v in_o gal._n 5.22_o 23._o and_o their_o be_v in_o christ_n signify_v a_o external_a union_n between_o they_o which_o be_v make_v by_o external_a christianity_n and_o in_o such_o a_o external_a respect_n the_o whole_a multitude_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n who_o do_v not_o violate_v the_o bond_n of_o the_o covenant_n between_o god_n and_o they_o by_o run_v into_o idolatry_n be_v say_v to_o cleave_v unto_o the_o lord_n which_o be_v another_o word_n which_o signify_v their_o be_v join_v or_o unite_v to_o he_o which_o can_v be_v understand_v but_o of_o a_o external_a union_n by_o external_a religion_n in_o reference_n to_o many_o of_o they_o at_o least_o thus_o in_o deut._n 4.3_o 4._o it_o be_v say_v all_o the_o man_n that_o follow_v baal-peor_a the_o lord_n thy_o god_n have_v destroy_v they_o from_o among_o you_o but_o you_o that_o do_v cleave_v unto_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n be_v alive_a every_o one_o of_o you_o this_o day_n where_o we_o see_v their_o continue_v to_o worship_v the_o god_n of_o israel_n in_o the_o use_n of_o his_o ordinance_n without_o follow_v baal-peor_a as_o some_o other_o do_v be_v call_v their_o cleave_v unto_o god_n and_o by_o that_o they_o continue_v their_o relation_n unto_o god_n uninterrupted_a but_o of_o this_o i_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o say_v more_o in_o the_o next_o inquiry_n thus_o we_o see_v that_o it_o be_v visible_a christianity_n that_o make_v man_n to_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o invisible_a christianity_n which_o make_v they_o to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n as_o invisible_a those_o that_o have_v visible_a christianity_n be_v thereby_o difference_v from_o the_o infidel_n and_o idolatrous_a world_n on_o the_o one_o hand_n and_o by_o their_o have_n no_o more_o they_o be_v difference_v from_o the_o invisible_a church_n on_o the_o other_o and_o thereby_o set_v in_o a_o middle_a state_n between_o both_o and_o that_o be_v in_o the_o visible_a church_n query_n viii_o whither_o man_n be_v no_o otherwise_o member_n of_o the_o church_n as_o visible_a than_o as_o they_o be_v repute_a member_n of_o the_o church_n as_o invisible_a those_o of_o the_o congregational_a way_n whether_o call_v independent_o or_o anabaptist_n have_v be_v wont_v strong_o to_o adhere_v to_o the_o negative_a of_o this_o question_n that_o man_n be_v not_o otherwise_o member_n of_o the_o church_n as_o visible_a than_o as_o they_o be_v repute_v of_o the_o church_n as_o invisible_a and_o it_o be_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o hypothesis_n that_o they_o refuse_v to_o admit_v any_o to_o church-communion_n but_o such_o in_o who_o in_o their_o judgement_n be_v find_v evidence_n or_o sign_n of_o invisible_a church-membership_n or_o save_a grace_n that_o none_o but_o such_o have_v right_a to_o